#I miss reading them and writing about them and obsessing over them
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
*cracks knuckles over keyboard*
All The Memories Of You_collectingblues, 111k words
100% canon material and you can't convince me otherwise. I think about this daily even a month after reading, I'm not exaggerating. It broke my standards for fanfiction to a point that any time I read something of lower quality I just can't help but compare to this and mourn lol. Plot mainly revolves around the events of the 6-month deal, with Aku and Atsushi slowly developing their relationship through many hardships and realizations. So many powerful moments here live rent-free in my mind, from the fights, terrors and living nightmares to the domestic wholesomeness, gentle care and careless laughter and everything in between.
waiting room_srxlee, 96k words
Not to be dramatic but if I could meet the author I would fall to my knees and kiss their feet. it. is. that. good. Left me absolutely heartbroken (and it has a happy ending ffs), this is the most poetic writing I've ever read in my life, could be a whole ass best-seller novel. Centers around Akutagawa's sickness in modern AU and the growth of his relationship with Atsushi, both before and after he finds out (and angst ensues). I would sell my soul just to the style of writing alone, trust me, not to mention the plot and the pure unrivaled emotion behind every line.
at the curtains close_GhouliGhost, kitkatfics (miniekooki), 165 k words
*takes a deep breath* I speedran this in 3 days and still cannot recover from the emotional damage. In the beginning I was like "haha that's hilarious wtf am I getting into" and then watch me just a few chapters later sobbing my eyes out, clutching my heart and reflecting on my life. Probably the most realistic portrayal of a relationship I've ever read. Come see how two teachers, one being a rich asexual science nerd and the other a theatre-loving cam-boy, struggling in the depths of hell (aka financing debt) become dear friends, companions in life and lovers.
A Story Unfinished_SpiderLilyRed, 14k words
I have a soft spot for writers AU (cuz of obvious reasons) and this managed to make me smile, laugh, broke my heart and then glued the pieces. Very cute concept of Aku being a writer that is forced to write romance and your local cutie bookshop employee Atsushi turns out to be just the expert you need (to wonder why hmmm)!
enshroud me_lostdimension, 6k words
Not sure if E-rated is up your alley, but recommending just in case because it's my all-time favourite. Incredibly gorgeous and poetic writing, this is love, okay, just pure and unconditional love. Incredibly soft and vulnerable, with hurt and comfort on the side because angst is the perfect catalyst of emotion, isn't it.
a hope to return_auroraheart, 11k words
Akutagawa dies and it's fucking beautiful, I need say no more. Just be in a very masochistic mood to read :3 It has a lot of wholesomeness and fun too!! (totally not to trick you into a false sense of security nu nu)
foolish_ringingmaybelles, 13k words
Restaurant AU sickfic! I remember I enjoyed it a lot at the time, it has well-written characters (as with everything I rec here), lot of caretaking and cute little crushes. Also Gin has a pretty important cameo and as an Aku-stan, Gin by default has my heart <3 This author in general has the best sickfics so I advice to check them out if you're in the mood!
dying by design_halfbloom (diphylleias), 5k words
And a shortie for dessert! Imagine this as a missing scene somewhere in the canon material, it does not disappoint in the slightest. It's just them talking on a rooftop, but the characterization is so on point that my jaw was to the floor the whole time, idk how they wrote it so perfectly canonical.
(aaand that's the best of of the best I've found and devoured since the start of my bsd obsession 2 or so months ago. I'm very passionate about sskk and those fics in particular and I selfishly hope this doesn't get lost in the void, happy reading my peeps!) (i definitely have more but trying to have some self-restriction here lol)
I NEED SSKK FICS RECOMMANDATION SOBS
GIMMZ THE SILLIIES
[Any fic works pls I just need something to read đ]
#come gush about sskk with me#i'm friendly :)#if even one person reads any of those i can die happy#sskk fic recs#bsd#shin soukoku#ao3#i have very strong emotions about those boys
41 notes
·
View notes
Text
âI love you. And I probably always will.â
Because I miss SwanFire very, very much
#I miss reading them and writing about them and obsessing over them#SwanFire#Emma swan#Neal Cassidy#Baelfire#ouat#my edits
27 notes
·
View notes
Text
âDIGIMONâBUT MAKING U CUM IS MY REAL HOBBY!â
⯠OTAKU!GOJO X BIMBO!READER
â summary: your best friend gojo is a hopeless otaku virgin with zero rizz that's still obsessed with digimonâdespite being a grown ass man. you're a slut who despite her best whoring effortsâcan't cum. you'll take his v-card and he'll fix your broken pussy, deal? college au.
â cw: virgin!satoru, gentle sex then rough sex , spanking (ass & pussy), slight sugar daddy/baby dynamic, coercion, dubcon, ecchi/pervy/freak nasty satoru, apprehensive bimbo!reader scared to nut, reader is also a bit of a tsundere brat but this isn't brat taming per se, oral fixation, toe licking, riding, prone bone, missionary, pussy eating, deep-throating, forced gagging, fingering, squirting, edging, olfactophilia, hand-job, protected & unprotected sex, bdsm references, masturbation, bit of somnophilia, pet names: Bunny (reader is called that in lieu of y/n), suggestions of geto x reader, mentions of satosugu and shokohime.
â a/n: in my crack smut bag again cause this white haired demon wont let me rest until i write this nasty shit. fr tho this fic 13.3k and literally 10k of it is Gojo fucking you six ways to sunday. fyi this is the same y/n from nerd!geto but this is a different version of that AU where suguru is the one who has rizz and satoru is the nerd. y'all better read this or i'll never write gojo again istg lmfao. also shoutout to @halosdiary for beta reading and telling me it was good enough to post lol.
eta: y'all won. its a series now lol
âFUCK YEAH, LETâS GO!!! I ALONE AM THE CHAMPION OF THE DIGITAL WORLD!!!â
Startled by Gojoâs sudden outburstâyou nearly rolled off the bed.Â
Thankfully Suguru is sitting next to you and caught you before you fell off completely.Â
Fully energized by his win Gojo sprang up from his elaborate PC setup, bouncing around the room in celebration. Fist-pumping the air he couldnât contain his excitement after winning the Tokyo Regional Qualifiers for the Digimon Online TCG.Â
âGuys, hey guys! See! I told you Iâd win! Iâm the strongest! The digidestined!â
You and Suguru exchanged exasperated glances before side-eyeing the hell out of Gojo.
This went on for a good 10 minutes so you had since returned to mindlessly scrolling TikTok, not wanting to encourage your grown-ass-almost-22-years-old-best-friendâs excitement over a childrenâs game.
âYou sure showed those middle schoolers, Toru.â
Suguru quips with a smile. Heâs clearly being sarcastic but Gojo is unfazedânothing could damper his mood.
âDamn straight I did!â
Both you and Suguru have to chuckle, rolling your eyes at his childish enthusiasm.Â
Despite the shared sentiment of annoyance over your best friendâs hobbies, you both were just happy to have Gojo back again. Two long years had passed since his parents made him travel the world on a rotation program, tasked with visiting the various Six-Vision Industries offices he would one day inherit.Â
Being the nerdy genius he was, Gojo stacked a mass of university level credits in high school. So even with missing the first two years of college heâd still be joining you as a third year at your university come fall.Â
After being apart for so long it was refreshing to hang out again and kicking it at Gojoâs mansion had been a daily occurrence since the start of the summer. Although things had definitely changed in the two years Gojo had been away there was one thing that certainly hadnât.
Gojo was still a fucking huge otaku nerd.Â
Youâd thought his time spent in the business world would have matured him. However, being abroad, away from his friends and spending all day around the âstinky old fogeys in suitsâ as he called them, only made him retreat further into otakudom.Â
That much was evident as his collection of posters, figures and manga had somehow only seemed to grow even with him away.Â
âAlright, while I just would love to stick around and hear more about you destroying the dreams of 12 year olds Toruâbeach girl just texted me, gotta bounce!â
Suguru tries to leave but Toru clings onto him practically spider monkeying himself onto his back in an effort to get him to stay.Â
âSugu! Donât leave! Weâve already been apart from each other for too long~~â
Sighing, Suguru attempts to pry his incorrigible bestie off of him.
âSatoru, you just spent the last 5 hours playing Digimon acting like me and Bunny werenât even here. Iâm sure if you go back to playing you won't even miss me.â
Gojo continues to pout as he whines for Suguru to stay.
âBut I miss you already Sugu!â
Gojo presses his cheek against Suguruâs as Suguruâs eyebrow begins to twitch.
âI know! Invite your date here! Our chef is 10 times better than any restaurant youâd go to and you know we have an infinity pool grotto and onsen!
While the offer was tempting as any potential date would be thoroughly wowed by the decadent splendor that was the Gojo Family ResidenceâSuguru would also thoroughly cuck himself once his date was given the grand tour.Â
Particularly the stop which included Gojoâs anime figure and otaku memorabilia rooms.Â
While a good number of them were harmlessly nerdy shonen or slightly ecchi isekai figuresâthe rest? Well the rest contained every kind of freak nasty hentai figure you could think ofâshibari, futanari and even the classic La Blue Girl tentacle dioramasâit was like a horny museum.Â
Although at this point it should be considered a horny mausoleum as no woman who walked in would be walking out still in the moodâit was surely a place where horny went to die.
âUh yeah, sure next time ToruâŠ.â
Suguru reaches back to pat Gojo on the head reassuringly.Â
Lying as he was more than certain there wouldnât be a next time. There wasnât even going to be dinnerâthis was purely a hookup situation.Â
â...but sheâs already waiting for me outside my placeâgotta run!â
Realizing Gojo still wasnât letting go, Suguru sighs realizing this would require him utilizing his Judo training.Â
In one swift movement, Suguru manages to shoulder-wheel Gojo and toss him onto the other side of his massive bed. The bed rebounds as he lands, slightly lifting you off your belly but you still are more interested in your phone.Â
This isnât the first time Suguru has Judo thrown Gojo off of him (likely wouldnât be the last either).
Saying quick goodbyes before Gojo could recover, Suguru manages to slip away.
âTraitor!!! So much for bros before hoes!â
Utterly dejected, Gojo crawls up next to you on his massive bed.
âAt least I still have you here Bunny.â
âUh, not to pile on but you know Iâm only here until Shoko and Utahime text me they are ready to go to the mall, right? Iâm in dire need of a new handbag!â
Now clinging on to you Gojo throws another small tantrum as the weight of half his sinewy body presses into your back, his lean muscular arms wrapping around your shoulders.
âNot you too, Bunny puhleeease!â
Youâve known each other since you were in diapers so it wasnât odd for you, him or Suguru to be found giving the others platonic cuddles like thisâoften all together too. The both of them were always so much bigger than you so you often enjoyed the comfort and security of always being the filling in the cuddle sandwich.
Gojo rests his chin on your shoulder watching as you continue scrolling TikTok. You sit in comfortable silence for a few minutes before his irritatingly hyperactive nature gets the best of him, and he starts poking around your phone to click on other videos that werenât the 'mystery and makeup' ones you were watching.
âToru, you know you could get a lot of your own hoes to hang out with if you werenât such a huge otaku nerdâŠâ
You had to swat Gojoâs hand away again as he tries to click on another prank video and he rolls off of you with a frustrated sigh.Â
â...youâre almost as good looking as SuguruâŠâ
Muttering the last part of that under your breath. Arguably Gojoâs features were just as if not more striking than Suguruâs.Â
He was too hot himself for all of it to go to waste for being such a big dork.
âIâm sure Sugu would be happy to teach you âthe way of the fuckboyâ if you asked Toruâthat is if youâd actually go out clubbing like a normal 21 year old.â
âWhy would I do that though? My house is 100 times better than a club!âÂ
TouchĂ©.Â
While no one in your friend group was what someone would consider poor, Gojoâs wealth paled in comparison to anyone elseâs and that went without saying. Heâd had everythingâif not moreâthan even the nicest tokyo club had. This was all thanks to his parents as socialites in their own right, often entertaining businessmen, dignitaries or foreign representatives with their ultra-exclusive parties.
âBesides, it wouldn't workââ
Gojo continued to pout.
ââSuguru would just get all the hoes anyway.âÂ
Easily able to walk up to even the most standoffish looking women, Suguru would have them reduced to bashful school girls in under 5 minutes. The women were always willing to hand over their numbers or drop any immediate plans to hang out with Suguru instead.
A good number of them had boyfriends already too.
Yet despite having the looks, Gojo opening his mouth ruined any advantage his lustrous blue eyes, exotic snow white hair and sharp handsome features gave him.
âWell, Suguru has a normal 21 year oldâs room for starters, Toru. Not full of nerdy ass anime posters and Digimon tournament trophies.â
Gojo goes quiet.Â
Driven from an early age to fill his head with knowledge of politics, technology, and international business relations, he spent the precious free time he did get with his friends or consumed by his own interests. Interests which just happened to be a bunch of otaku shitâDigimon in particular.Â
It was an escape heâd cherished as a child and that didnât change growing into adulthood either, if anything he needed it more now.
When Gojo doesnât answer you look over to see him actually sulking for real nowâface buried in a giant Agumon pillow plushie.Â
What a crybaby.Â
But the crybaby was one of your besties so you decided to lighten the mood and tease him a little.
âYa know ToruuuuâŠ.you could just fuck Sugu then. Donât think I havenât seen yâall get a lilâ handsy during our cuddles!â
You give him a playful smirk and mime grabby hands at him.
âOh and you havenât? Donât act like you wouldnât fuck Suguru either!â
No longer appearing mopey, Gojo is up and laughing again. Mission Accomplished.
âHey! I never said I wouldnât but this isnât about me, this is about you finally getting some play!â
You snap back but youâre blushing.
Like damn, who hadnât thought about fucking Suguru though?Â
âIt's not the same if he makes me bottom! Plus no one thinks I can get pussy!â
Gojo grumbles, hugging his Agumon plushie to his cheek.Â
You canât help but notice how cute and baby girl he looks all pouty.Â
Heâd definitely get women lining up around the block of his huge ass mansion if he could at least get to the dating phase without giving out the otaku ick.Â
âBecause you canât GojoâHoes donât want to fuck guys who play Digimon!â
âBut youâre a hoe and you like digimon too!â
Turning to look at him, youâd had half a mind to slap the shit out of Satoru but he had said it so earnestly. There was no sass nor malice behind his words.Â
Besides, you were a hoe. That wasnât something you ever denied.
You sigh.Â
âYeah I am a hoe now and Iâkeywordâliked Digimon. But that was back when I was a kid, Toru!â
Gojo scoffs and rolls his eyes.
âListen, youâre my friend so mâgonna keep it a buck with youâa guy concerned with being digidestined is definitely not pussy destined, you digidork!â
You playfully hit him with the pillow you were laying on, not wanting him to start sulking again.Â
Finally stimulated by something interesting Gojo wastes no time joining the pillow fight you initiated and you tussle with him on the bed until you both are exhausted and out of breath.Â
Of course you come out of it victorious though. By the end youâd pinned both the pillows and Toru under you.Â
Gojo however is back to pouting.
âUgh, Bunny seriously thoughâI canât go into junior year of college as a virgin!â
You smirk at his complaints as the answer is obvious.
âThrow away your figures and digimon cards then.â
âIâd rather die.â
âA virgin? At this rate you will.â
Gojo huffs in defeat as you settle comfortably on top of him this time.Â
Youâre about to reach for your phone again until you see a curious look flash across his faceâthe kind of look he always had as a kid when he thought of a hair-brain scheme that would lead to getting you all in trouble.
âToruâwhat is it? And why do I have the feeling mânot gonna like it?â
You pull away cautiously, but his large hands grip your waist, stopping you and causing you to squeak in surprise.
âHm, I dunnoâwas just thinkinâ... why donât you fuck me, Bunny?â
Your deadpan expression has Gojo scrambling, holding you closer in a vice grip when you try to squirm away.Â
âHey! Wait, Iâm serious! Come on, Bunny! I need the experience and you always tell us about all your hookups! You have the experienceâhelp a guy out!â
Staring at him skeptically you considered.
I mean sure, you always thought Gojo was attractive, more so since he returned this summer nearly a half a foot tallerâbut he was Gojo Satoru.
Your dorky, goofy, pervy otaku bestie practically since birth!Â
You couldnât just go and fuck him could you?
God, you could only imagine the taunts youâd get if word got out. Your friend group would never let you live it down!Â
âNah Toruâthat would be too weird!â
âHuh, how come? You said I was almost as attractive as Suguru earlier!â
You stiffen.
Fuck, heâd heard that after all.Â
âOoo, ooo! Annnnd, you said last week you wanted a sugar daddy⊠Well, hi! Iâm right here!â
The huge grin on his face has you frowning although more so because he was actually making some sense for once. I mean you were half-joking when you said itâwell, letâs be honest not really.Â
However, you mostly said it because while your family was well off enough, you still werenât living in the lap of luxury by any means like a Gojo clan member. Unfortunately for you though, you were born with the expensive tastes of someone who was. So while you could afford a cute Chanel bag or a MCM wallet here or there, youâd set your sights on something higherâa coveted Hermes Birkin.Â
Toru certainly could afford to buy you a whole truck load of them with what his family made in less than an hour.Â
Nevertheless that wasnât really the issue at hand.Â
In spite of you being far from a virgin, there was actually a good reason why you wouldnât be a good choice for Gojo to lose his v-card.
âEr, emâthatâs really not the issue, ToruâŠâÂ
Trailing off youâre the one pouting now as you glance at your nails.Â
âThen what? Donât tell me our lilâ Bun Bun is shy now? Over lilâ olâ me?â
Gojo teases you by sticking out his tongueâchuckling when you snap your head up to glare at him.
âYou wishâŠâÂ
You grumble, chewing your lip now and debating whether or not to tell him the truth while Gojo looks at you with wide and glassy puppy eyes. Shaking your head you come to the conclusion you could trust him with your secret.Â
He was the virgin otaku after allâheâs the one who should be embarrassed here!
âItâs just thatâŠIâI canât cum.â
Gojo just blinks at you.Â
Clearly confused with metaphorical question marks surrounding his head as that's definitely not the answer he was expecting.
âIâve slept with plenty of guys before but I never had an orgasm. I don't even really get closeâI mean, sure, it feels good, I guessâmostly just a little weird. I heard some people just canât and maybe that's me.â
You shrug, a bit nervous to look Gojo in the eye as you thought he may tease you further about this but was lost in contemplation. Almost as if he was seriously trying to do the biological math around what youâd just told him. Â
After about a minute more he finally asksâ
ââDoes Suguru know?â
A simple question, unloaded in tone as Gojo is genuinely curious but it leaves you flustered nonetheless.Â
âWhat?! Are you crazy?! Why would I tell him?!â
âJust figured if anyone could thenââ
ââHell no, Toru! Besides, what if he does? Iâm not trying to be reduced to a fuckboyâs pick me if he ends up being the only man alive who can give me an orgasm!â
Sure Suguru was hot as fuckâas was a lot of your other fuckboy friends (Toji and Sukuna)âbut you definitely didnât want to end up like the dickmatized girls that would follow them around and literally box each other in the streets over some cock.Â
You werenât much of a fighter anyway and your face was far too cute to be getting scratched up.
Pussy should be put on a pedestal, not the other way around. Youâd continue to be orgasmless before it came to that.
âMm, but Shoko and Utahime know?â
Youâre blushing more than ever this time.
âUm, yeahâT-They said once I realized all men were worthless to call them and theyâd give me multiple of them.â
Gojo snorted at that but he was now convinced you both could help each other.Â
âSo we have no other optionsâthen it's settled!â
In one fluid motion Gojo snatches away the pillows from between you and swaps positionsânow with you on the bottom.
âHuhâwaitâToru!?â
Gojo groans.
âCome on, Bunny! I want pussy, you want to cum on top of getting that Bikram bagâ
ââBirkin bag.âÂ
You corrected him.
âYeah that one! So letâs help each other out, eh? PULHEEEASEEEâJust the tip?â
You werenât at all convinced that Gojoâwhose sexual knowledge came purely from JAV, hentai and onaholesâcould make you cum.
But then again sure, fuck it, why not?
You were getting bored waiting for Shoko to call you anyway and if Toru was willing to come off a Birkin for a lilâ pussy, you might as well fuck him.Â
None of the other guys you had fucked even came close to making sex this worth it. Frankly this would be worth it even if you didnât actually cum. Â
âFiiiine Toru, letâs have sexââ
âFUCK YEAH!â
ââBUT weâre laying down some ground rules!â
Sitting up with a straight back, Gojo obediently awaited your orders.
âAnything you want Bunny, name 'em goâon!â
Gojoâs overenthusiasm was like a puppy and you were sure if he had a tail it would be thumping on the bed like crazy now.Â
You wanted to crack a smile but you know from prior experience that if you give men an inch they will take the whole goddamn mileâand Gojo of all people was no exceptionâso you are firm as you sit up to look in his eyes and lay down the law.
 âFirstâlike you said, just the tip.â
Gojo started to protest but the raise of your eyebrows had him changing his tune immediately.
âGot it! Got it! Just the tip would be amazing Bunny, what else?â
He chided himself and you continued.
âAnd secondly, just because you bros have no loyalty, itâs still âchicks before dicksâ over here. You better get your nut quick cause Iâm still leaving to go purse shopping when Shoko and Utahime call me.â
Gojo waves you off with that rule.Â
âPsh, we should have plenty of time, it's almost 6pm! Theyâve probably been too busy bumping their own purses together to go shopping with you for one. You havenât heard from either of them in hours!â
Fair pointâwildly out of pocket, but fair.Â
Still.Â
âBumping Purses!? Really, Toru?â
âYou know Iâm not lyingâbut thatâs it then, right Bunny?â
Not waiting, Gojo throws his shirt off and starts fumbling with the ties on his sweats before you stop him.
âNah, Toru, hold your horses! One more rule!â
Freezing mid-action, Gojo's hands are shaking as he expectantly gazes at you, waiting for the last condition before you give him the green light.
âFinally, thirdâand most fucking importanlyâif you make any, and I mean even just ONEâotaku reference, especially Digimon while youâre inside me Iâll snap your lilâ digidick off, understood?â
Gojo swallowed.Â
Hard terms to live with but something he would be willing to abide by for pussy.
âYes maâam! Got it! Just the tip, you will ditch me for the purse bumpers and no Digimon!â
Gojo repeats your rules matter-of-factly.Â
You roll your eyes but are satisfied enough he understood and you wave him off in the direction of your bag.
âGood. Now, be a good boy and go get a rubber out of my purse.âÂ
Bolting over to your purse Gojo grabs a pack of condoms and is back on the bed in an instant.
Reality sinking in on what you were about to do and who you were about to do it with, you suddenly become hyper aware, appraising Gojo.Â
You note just how much in the two years since high school heâs grown. Still a bit lanky in areas but overall he filled out more for sure and his muscles were much more defined rippling underneath his skin as he eagerly clambered over you. Gojo still possessed the same piercing sky blue eyes that lit up a room but they looked all too predatorily hungry now that he was hovering over you.Â
You swallow.
Youâd feel almost completely out of control of the situation if it wasnât also for the bundle of nervous energy radiating off of Gojoâhis hands spasming like he might bust his pants the moment he touches you.
You try to maintain your composure, but your jaw drops and your eyes widen in shock when he finally pushes his sweats and boxers down in one swift motion.
Gojo was fucking huge!
âToruâwhat the actual fuck?!â
Third leg was a massive understatement.Â
I mean you didnât think heâd be smallâyouâd been around him enough in boxers, sweats, pjs, etc growing upâbut you didnât expect this.Â
He was definitely a grower and Christ did he just fucking grow!
Gojo looked puzzled until he followed your wide eyed gawking down to his lower half.Â
Heh.Â
âAm I the biggest youâve seen, Bunny?â
Growing prideful Gojo pokes at you a bit and your ogling only grows more incredulous.Â
You didn't know if he was the girthiest but certainly the longest by far. Heâd actually puncture a lung if he stuck that whole monstrous thing in you!
It would literally have to be just the tip and you are thanking God right now that heâd already agreed to those terms. That would be much too uncomfortable to cum from and you are beginning to question how the pornstars manage. This wasnât a JAV but Gojo, if his company ever went belly up, certainly had a promising career on OnlyFans ahead of him.
Gojoâs chest puffed up ten times more from your staring as he slipped the condom on (which only fit two-thirds of the way down).Â
âO-Ok, Bunny now you!â
His cock throbbed more violently the longer you looked at him. The anticipation is contagious to say the least and you can't help but feel your chest warm at his eagerness.Â
Gojo wants to get the attention off of him and you smile at him knowingly.
âYou mean you donât want to take my clothes off yourself?â
The thought never occurred to Gojo but he dumbly nodded. Your yelps echo in the room as his massive hands are on your hips faster than lighting pulling you towards him.Â
The motion causes your tits to jiggle, the soft mounds moving freely beneath your spaghetti strapped halter and Gojo berates himself on how he only now is noticing you werenât wearing a bra all this time.Â
Gojoâs mouth goes dry at your nipples, already peaked and poking through the thin fabric.Â
Your nipples pucker further when the crisp air of the A/C hits them after Gojo pulls your top overhead and you arch up to assist, not realizing you presented yourself to him like a treat to a dog.Â
âT-Toru!!!!â
Gojo wraps his strong sturdy arms fully around your body. Pressing his face deep into your chest as his warm wet lips latch onto a nipple. His mouth now suctioned to you, Gojo swirls and flicks his tongue around the hardened bud. Gojo moans around your flesh, pleasantly surprised at how addicting the sweet salty taste of your skin is.Â
If Gojo wasnât sure he had an oral fixation before he surely knows now. Zoning out everything else except for the sloppy sounds of him worshiping your breast, he relishes the contrasting textures of his rough tongue suckling the soft skin of your swelling bud.Â
Gojo surely would have been latched onto you for hours and you are only able to pry his head away when he releases your nipple with a wet pop to take a breath.
âTORU!!!â
Youâre panting and red faced as you yank his head back.Â
But Gojo is a man solely focusedâtongue hanging out off his mouth captivated by how cutely your areola puffed as it glistened with his spit and fighting overwhelming desire to get the other one in a similar state.
âHuhâBunny, b-babyâyou taste so good nâ your tiddies are so niceâso fuh-kinâ soft.â
Gojoâs tongue is hanging out of his mouth drooling as he attempts to dive back into your chest. you feel his heavy cock on your thigh as his hips begin to rut against you.Â
This was too much!
âStop Toru! Youâre being too rough, they are sensitive! Besides, timesâ ticking! Remember I have no problem leaving you blue balled if Shoko or Utahime call me!âÂ
You do your best to give him a disapproving look as you blush.
âAwe but you seemed like you were liking it, you were whining loud enough.â
âShut up nâjust get on with it!â
âYes maâam~~â
Enjoying your breasts so much Gojo almost forgot he hadnât even seen your pretty pussy yet.Â
Making quick work of your shorts, Gojo manages to pull them down just over your core but is stunned once again as he burns the image of the skin-melding fabric of the mesh hot pink g-string covering your cunt. The thin satiny straps dug into your supple hips amplifying your curvaceous form.
Fucking slutty as hell! Â
Rivaling that of even his most favorite and most scandalous hentai figures.Â
This was so much better, so much more lewd as the clingy fabric struggles to cover the fat of your plump pussy lipsânot like the transparency of them left much to the imagination.Â
God help him, he just wants to tear them off with his teeth and open mouth swan-dive into your dewy lilâcuntâ-pushing his tongue deep into your peachy core tongue fucking orgasm after orgasm out of you until he drowned in your milky nectarâbut he has to restrain himself.
You probably wouldnât like that too much given your reaction earlier and heâd die if youâd happen to just call the whole thing off.
Mouth drying and hands twitchingâGojo is trying so hard to be a good boy and contain his more perverted instincts.
âEarth to Toru! Y-You good?â
Gojo looked like a tightly wound coil ready to pop in every sense of the word and you hated that his nervousness was making you nervous too.Â
So on edge you almost jumped once his eyes snapped up to meet yours.
âG-Great, BunnyâŠj-just fine.âÂ
Gojoâs voice falters, becoming more pitchy and you giggle. As much as Gojo wants to look at your pussy as he peels the flimsy moist fabric off of them he couldnât do that at this momentâhe would actually bust his pants.
Instead, Gojo leans in to kiss you, but you block him. He ends up kissing your palm instead.
âToruuu⊠that be too weird, weâre friends remember?â
âYeah friends who are fucking, Bunny! You mean you wonât let my tongue in your mouth but youâre letting my dick inside your pussy?!â
You knew it sounded nonsensical even before he said it back to you. But your heart was pounding so loudly in your ears you could barely hear him anyway.
You didnât know what you were scared of this time?Â
You had let all your other previous hookups makeout with you but Gojo was different.Â
This felt entirely different.
You didnât know why, you just knew it was and you were apprehensive of the unfamiliar emotions he was stirring in you and this wasnât supposed to be anything more than an arrangement between friends.
âDonât you need to warm up tho Bunny? Obviously mâno pro at thisâbut even I know a little bit more foreplay is usually needed?â
Your heart beats louder at his concern but you push that aside trying to focus on your breaths.Â
Satoru should have been the easiest lay but for a reason that alludesâyou were coming undone before him.
âShut up Toru and just fuck me! The foreplay stuff doesn't matter, it won't make a difference anyway, mânot gonna cum! Also youâre big af so grab your lube. We're gonna need lots of it!â
Toru pouts but follows your commands without fuss.Â
Although heâs anxious to get his dick wet he also is still thinking of how he can hold up his end of the bargain other than a stupid purse.Â
You said he didnât need to but he wanted to.Â
The thought of finally losing his v-card excited him but there was something that made his cock throb harder at being the first man to give you an orgasm.Â
But you donât want him to touch you beyond what was absolutely necessary, so how was he going to accomplish that exactly? Â
Gojo was a genius and had the IQ score to prove it, heâd be able to solve the problem once he was inside you, right?Â
Turning back to face you after retrieving the lube from his nightstand, Toru has to grab the base of his cock this time to keep from prematurely coming in the latex that was already starting to thicken with his precum.
There you were laid out like a slutâpanties pulled to the sideâfingering yourself a bit to loosen up, having reconsidered his suggestion of foreplay when the twitching on your thigh reminded you of how big he actually was.
âOH SHIââ
You notice his jaw hanging open, utterly entranced as his eyes follow the motions.Â
You knew you should be letting him do this to get the experience but honestly there was no sense in setting Gojo up for failureâdelivering a significant blow to his ego when he inevitably couldnât make you cum. You didnât want to damage him even more if he felt it was his fault your pussy was apparently broken, you having tensed up completely every time a guy had tried before.
But you canât deny you are getting some pleasureâif only through your own amusementâas you grab his cock and pump the lube he poured down his latex covered shaft, still fingering yourselfâmuch to Gojoâs delight and wonder of seeing an actual real pussy up close.Â
Gojo sucks in air and groans pitifully as your hand spreads the cool gel over his length which only intensifies his ache to be inside of you.Â
âCâmere, ToruâŠâ
You beckon sweetly, guiding him forward with your back against the pillows, you tease the crown of his tip through your folds preparing him for missionary.Â
Gojo nearly bites a chunk out of his lip when his thick cockhead finally catches over your slicked entrance and youâre left wincing.
âT-Toru, e-easyâo-ok? Not too deep...â
A breathy confirmation shudders out of Gojo as heâs easing himself into your warm tightening cunt. The stretch is immediate which mentally confirms for you he is also the girthiest youâve ever had as well.Â
Your heels dig into his hips to brace yourself while he hovers over you, arms shaking.
âFUUUUUHHHHââ
Even with the rubber on, Gojo still thinks he might melt from how warm and tight you areâso much better than even his onahole with the custom grip and heating features.Â
Screwing his eyes shut, Gojo has to count backwards from a million, recite Japanâs national anthem, list the GDPs of the top 10 wealthiest countriesâanythingâor he will cum too soon or worse, crack and drive his hips until heâs all the way to the hilt from the way your dangerous lilâ pussy is sucking him in.
God, it felt like your slutty cunt had a mind of its own calling for him to push in a lilâ deeper, greedily begging for him to go a lilâ further but Gojo resists.Â
Sweat beads on his brow from the exerted effort of sheer willpower to keep his promise to you.
To Gojoâs credit, he really is doing his best, only a little less than a third but due to his length that's still a lot.Â
Your eyes wander up to Gojoâs face and away from where he is wholly splitting you open, lest you clench on him even tighter and you knew you needed to relax. Even if you weren't really feeling much but the overwhelming strain from the tight fit, looking at Gojo you were happy that he appeared to be in bliss at least.Â
His eyes still squeezed shut, mouth hanging open and spittle flowing down his jaw Gojo was in his own world as he continuously babbled nonsense about how perfect your cunt felt around him.
Just the tip in you for all of 20 seconds and already pussy drunk from just this much.Â
âB-Bunny, Oh SHHIIIâB-Bunnyâmâcute BunâFAH-ACK sâgudâmâgonna cum soon UHHâpussy feels sâgoodâoh-oh my god!âÂ
Although his entire body is quaking with pleasure, the few functional brain cells that survived the fiery blaze of your sinful lilâ pussy are still thinking of you.Â
Gojo tries to give some attention to your neglected lilâ clit, but a single swipe causes your leg to jerk and you promptly push his hand away again.
âN-NO! Pleaseee, mâtoo sensitive Toru! J-Just focus on your thrusts! Y-Youâre sâclose, mâcan feel your cock twitching i-i-inside me...â
Gojo wants to challenge you on thisâsuspecting from the way your cunt felt constricting around him you felt something pleasurable thenâbut heâs too far gone and much too inexperienced to keep focused on anything else.Â
Especially when you are so explicitly describing him fucking you.Â
Grabbing his face you bring your foreheads to touch to help calm him so heâd last a bit longer. Although you still hold his face to prevent him from kissing you, he's close enough that you're sharing the same breath, now looking into each other's eyes.Â
He struggles to maintain eye contact though before the magnetism of your heated core had them rolling back again.
You're still not close to cumming, yet you are beginning to enjoy the warm comforting feeling of being this full as he holds you close, his short thrusts gaining momentum.Â
Sharing intimacy with someone you actually cared about for once is really nice and you wouldn't mind having more sex like this even if you couldn't cum.Â
Thumbing over Gojoâs moist lips you coo sweet praises to him as he desperately moans around your delicate appendage. Suckling your thumb between his lips and nursing on it until he can no longer contain the heavy breaths that overpower him and fan across your face.Â
Sharing the same exhaled breath is making you light headed and you mewl at the keen sensations it stirs in your pussy that has him full on gasping now. Gojo releases the whiniest moan as he falls into you, unable to support his arms any longer.Â
Showering your neck with open mouth kisses as his body curls more into yours.
However it all proves far too much when Gojo faltering more in his promise, slips more than halfway into your cuntâinstantly filling the latex as it balloons inside of you as you scrape your heels against his back.
SHIIIIIT! He sâbig!Â
Despite nearly splitting your poor pussy into two at the end though, Gojo did such a good job for his first time.Â
Youâd forgive him just this once though as you wrapped your arms around his head, gently petting his undercut. His heaving breaths quiet under your soothing touches, finally ceasing the stream of his spit and tears that had been pooling in your collarbone.
Staying like that for a while holding him while his heartbeat calms to match yours and his length softens inside you. You close your eyes peacefully for a few moments before you hear your phone vibrate next to you.Â
It's Shoko!
Shokoâs text apologizes for the delays and offers to get dinner insteadâpromising to go shopping with you and Utahime tomorrow since they got held up and you make plans for dinner in two hours.Â
Perfect. That gives you plenty of time to clean up and get yourself presentable.Â
âDid you cum even a lil bit, Bunny?â
Oh sweet baby, if you have to askâŠYou think to yourself but it's not poor Toruâs fault your pussy is out of order.
âUm, no Toru babyâbut you did so well! Ya know youâre actually pretty cute and considerate when you get a little pussy. Iâm sure youâll manage to make any girl you happen to get naked happy!â
Gojo counters you with a disappointed look still panting slightly as he pulls out and rolls over bringing you towards him to cuddle. Allowing him, reasoning that you donât have to get up right this second.
Yoour back meets his chest and itâs then you notice the condom still inside you. Figures since it was much too small in the first place. Yet you couldnât complain as it managed to do its job due to Satoru not going all the way in. Breathing out you grimace a bit as you still had to give it a pretty good tug to lodge the filled latex out of your sore cunt.Â
âGoddamn Toru, you were pretty backed up huh?â
Having witnessed the entire display from over your shoulder and the sight of the light blue rubber covered in your fluids while drooping heavily with his own has Gojoâs dick stirring again as you jiggle the rubber demonstrating its fullness before tossing it into the bin beside his bed.Â
Conflicted Gojo broods for a while as he hugs you to him.Â
While his body felt mostly satisfied, seeing you still unsatisfied put a huge damper on his mood.Â
Sure you had told him you couldnât comeâbut would any girl cum without much foreplay or stimulation?Â
Even the darker hentais and JAVs heâs seen had more foreplay than this!
Hmmm...Â
Thinking over the experience again in his mind he had a hunch that if right could cure your lack of orgasms but needed you to let him fuck you once more to be sure.Â
âSo youâre gonna hit and quit just like that, Bunny?â
He teases clinging onto you again when you try to maneuver out of his embrace.
âNo time for more cuddles ToruâShoko texted, weâre getting dinner in two hours.â
âWait! Bunny! Thatâs so far awayâLet me go again, pleeeease!â
Gojo is determined this time to make you cum for real! And, yeah you knowâyour slick heat sliding up and down his cock again would be a highlight too.
âToruââ
ââCome on bunny! We solved my problem but we haven't fixed yours, you still haven't cum yet!â
âToru, I thought we understood we were never going to solve my problem in the first placeâso don't stress! Also I know this is probably the first time a girl has said this to you and actually meant itâbut it's really not you!â
Gojo puts his negotiation face on.Â
You wanted to play hardball? Bet.
âIâll give you my black card for a whole week!â
Gojo turns you around to look him in the eye so you could see how sincere he was, he really wanted to try againâhe knew he could make you cum this time!
You sighed.Â
You couldn't really be mad at himâin fact, it was actually the cutest thingâthat he wanted to keep trying for your benefitâbut you didnât see the point when it would just lead to the same result. You donât even need to glance down to see Gojoâs cock was just as resolute as heâs already recovered and fully brickedâlength pulsing against your ass.Â
Wellâgiven his last performance you were sure heâd last all of five minutes and if you had his black card for a whole week you were about to tear the entire Hermes store upâa Birkin and a Kelly in every color!
Hell, maybe you could even get the coveted baby pink ostrich one.Â
âMmmâkay, Toruâblack card for a week! No limit!â
âYup of course! Oooh noâWait, no rubbers and I'll let you have my new g-wagon too! I hear raw sex is sooo much better you will cum for sure then Bunny!â
Well you knew a good bargain when you heard it.
Throwing the unopened condoms to the side you laid back down.
Imported European cars are stupid expensive to get in Japan and if he was coming off a g-wagonâespecially as it was a custom powder blue matte with dune colored seats and shiny platinum rimsâthen he could have as many two-minute pump sessions as he wanted.
Heâd likely pass out from dehydration in less than twenty tops anyway.
âOkay, but same rules as before except no cumming inside Toru! I mean it! It's too much of a mess to clean up after, itâll be dripping all night especially all that you came last timeâŠâ
The thought of your gooey tender cunt weeping his nut for hours has Gojoâs balls tightening in want of making it a realityâbut he knew if all went to plan youâd be begging for it!Â
Firstâhe needed you to take a more active role this time. He saw you settled back onto the pillows and that simply wouldnât do.Â
âUm Bunny, can you be on top? I-Iâm dying to see what your cute tiddies look like jiggling all crazy like in my face.â
You cover your chest, frowning in offense at his more debauched ecchi preferences but you agreed nonetheless.Â
Relenting as itâd likely have him cumming sooner and then you could finally get ready to meet the girlsâall in your new g-wagon, although youâd definitely have to make up a lie as to how you scammed it out of Gojo.
Gojo takes your place on the pillows, amused as now itâs his turn to beckon you forward. Steeling yourself, you embarked on your climb to mount him. Tall and lean with wisps of hair sticking to his face Gojo looked more like he belonged in a painting, unnerving you that a face only an artist could sculpt admired your body with his lustful gaze.Â
He was too sexy for his own nerdy ass good like this and you failed not to whimper when his strong hands settled at your waist.
Lube in your hand you smirk, gaining some confidence back when you hear Gojo hiss as the cool gel once again spreads down his fiendish girth that pulses restlessly at your touch. The sensation is all the more agonizing without the latex barrier hindering him as your, your silky smooth palm glided over his bare cock before tugging back the sensitive foreskin covering his crown head.Â
Licking your lips you almost want to bend down and taste the pre marbling like a pearlescent jewel on his pretty exposed cockhead.
Heâd probably cry like a baby if you did, you mused with a grin.Â
Good God girl snap out of it!Â
You chastise yourselfâno, you had to focus and end this quickly before you lost your mind. The idea of fucking Gojo beyond what he could buy for you started to get more appealing and you couldnât allow that.
Readying yourself to mount him this time you realize your pussy is quivering in anticipation of the stretchâit was uncomfortable last time soâwhy was your body reacting this way?
Your own pussy betraying you as she seemed to yearn for the opportunity to gobble him up, taking him in with less resistance in spite of you. Flexing around the thick intrusion inside your core you shiver in feeling the curve of every vein on his girthy cock as you lowered yourself onto him.
The way your pussy flexed as a jolt of electricity ran through you scared youâa new sensation bubbling up inside, threatening to make you lose yourself in the feeling. Must be survival instincts you rationedâyour cunt scared for its life never having encountered such an acute danger like Gojoâs dick before.
The burn was pleasurable this time, sucking in sharp breaths at every slight movement of him moving inside your core. Yet Gojo is in even more blissâfrom the serpentine motion of your hips cascading over his own to how your your puffy pussy lips looked so wonderfully parted, stretched open around his cockâFUCK!
How was he going to complete his plan if his brain just started turning to mush everytime your dangerously succulent cunt grinded against him.
âOâooo shiiiiiit!â
âY-You okay, Bunny?â
Although Gojo himself looked like he was in agony his face was reddening from how good your raw gummy walls were surging around his length.
âHhnng, fine Toruâyâer j-just big.âÂ
Gravity was your natural enemy in this scenario and you took him a bit past halfway this time.
Wanting to distract you, his large hands grope your tits but you knock him awayâyour stomach fluttering.Â
âWhat's wrong, this time?â
â...sân-nothing, itâsâjust put your hands on my hips, it helps me so my legs don't get tired.â
You lied.
Well your legs were quivering but more pressingly your heart started to race and you didn't know if it was because a cock like this could actually relocate your uterus to your lungs or if youâd actually started catching something similar to romantic feelings for Gojo Satoru.Â
Either one was unacceptable in your book.
âHurry up and cum, Toru!âÂ
However Gojo is about to say something, your phone rings.
âI-Its UtahimeâŠâ
âDonât answer Bunny! Focus or youâre never going to cum!â
âI can multitask, Toru! Besides, on the small chance I do I know it's definitely going to take longer than the two minutes you lasted before.âÂ
Hushing Gojoâs protests and eyes flaring at him to be silent, you answer the call.Â
âBunny!â
âHime!â
You greeted each other with your usual peppinessâlike Gojo wasnât 6 and a half inches deep with 2 and half more to goâgive or takeâinside you.
âWhatâs up? Oh erm, what am I doingââ
A sly and haughty smile plays on his lips and you scowl at him.
ââIâm still at Gojoâs and noâIâm not doing much at all right now! Hahaâyeah. I can definitely talk, of course!â
Gojo frowns as his eyes narrow and to placate him you start half heartedly rotating your hips.
You still looked sexy as hell though. Even with less effort expended it was still a workout as shown by the sheen of perspiration glowing off your body. That delectable sight combined with the light swaying of your tiddies was more than enough for him to cum if he just focused on himself.
But he was determined not to this time, not until you had.
âSee Toru? They were helping Shokoâs parents!â
You stick out your tongue and he makes a face back at you.
âOh what?âsânothingâHa! Well ok! He said you were too busy bumping pussies to go to the mall with me! Pshâtypical am I rite? Huhâput you on speaker? LOL O-OKAY.â
Snitch!Â
Gojo mouths to you offended youâd rat him out like this as Utahimeâs voice shrills through the phone.
âSatoru you loser! You have to talk about our pussies cause you could never have one of your own in a million years!â
Snorting with laughter Gojo is more than amused.Â
If only they knew.
You pale signaling at him to âSTFUâ or he could finish himself off.
âAww, is that so Utahime? Iâm so hurt.âÂ
The mischief in Gojoâs voice is obviousâheâs clearly mocking you.
Annoyed with him getting the upper hand and feeling sassy, you pile onâ
âExactly Hime! I mean he might get someâbut a total otaku like him wouldnât know what to do with a pussy if he even ever got inâEEP!â
A heavy handed smack comes down on your assâhard.Â
The force ripples its way into your cunt causing you to feverishly tighten as your tongue pushes a low moan out between your lips.
âOh ho hoâwhat's this? You actually like getting spanked huh, Bunny? You dirty, dirty girlâŠâÂ
Gojo is whispering again before his hand once more swats at that same cheek.
The sting causes saliva to pool in the corners of your mouth.Â
If looks could kill Gojo would have died a horrible deathâthat is if you could focus enough to even glare at him. Youâre absolutely mortifiedâtoo consumed by the spanks that fiercely rained down on your reddening bottom, your pussy getting shamelessly wetter with every hit.
âAHâFAHHHââ
âBunny! Whatâs happened?!â
You hear Shokoâs concerned voice this time.
âN-N-Nothing, G-Gojoâs being mean to me cause I told on him! H-He pinched me so hard Shoko!â
âLiar!â
Gojo mouths again and his demeanor turns absolutely devilish.Â
Oh? So that's how you wanted to continue to play?Â
You were such a brat sometimes but then again so was he and his competitive nature soared at the challenge.
âOh did I? Like this, Bunny?â
Gojoâs palms cup your tits roughly before he pinches them, twisting your nipples causing the slobber that collected to dribble down your chin and onto your chest.
âShiiiiâT-Toru! S-STOP YOU A-AHHHâSSHOLE!!â
The grip his thumb and forefingers have on your sensitive buds intensifies and you can barely keep the phone in your grasp as you hold it out arm extended to keep your cries from being heard.Â
With only one hand free thereâs no way for you to worm nor pry his hands from your tits as you are still struggling not to sink lower and choke on your own tongue from the electrifying sensations assaulting your cunt.
This couldnât be what it was like could it? This overwhelming feeling?
You didnât want to admit it but as tear-inducing as the sensations wereâthey felt real fucking good.Â
Your hips began involuntary rocking as your core now craved how Gojoâs cock scraped against your walls like it was trying to carve itself even deeper inside you if youâd let your hips drop just a little bit lower.Â
âToru! Stop picking on our Bunny! Donât make us come over there and kick your ass!â
The sweat that now runs down Gojoâs brow threatens to blur his vision but heâs locked in and focused. The phone situation being so fucking raunchy combined with the way your pussy is creaming on him (despite you trying your hardest not to feel good) has him stressed.Â
Swallowing he had to try hard to keep up the act as well as please you without cummingâit would be a feat if he accomplished it to say the very least.
God, this was all so shamefully vulgar.Â
Did you do this on purpose answering the phone?Â
He didnât even know this was a kink of hisâor yours apparently.
But your âproblemâ was now clear to Gojo:
Itâs not that you couldnât cum, itâs just that you were scared to cum.Â
Any real stimulation triggered your fight or flight.Â
You were perfectly capable, you just needed a bit of forcefulnessâhowever the effect of it terrified you and you bolted from it every time you had sex with someoneâuntil now.Â
Heh, there would be no more running from the nut for his little bunny rabbit.
Gojo wonders how far into his ecchi depravity he can take you.
âYour Bunny, huh?â
Gojo's eyes squinted as if he could stare down Shoko and Utahime through the phone.
You were his.Â
He was the one who was going to make you cum and frankly he didnât give a fuck anymore if Shoko or Utahime heard itâin fact he wanted them too.
Planting his feet into the bed, Gojoâs form shifts as he swiftly grips your waist simultaneously bringing you down while driving his pelvis upâpummeling his entire length into your guts. The prickly patch of groomed hair at his base tickles your poor abused lilâ clit which had been forcibly nestled into themâthe result of being smashed against his pubic bone.Â
âFUHCCCKâMUTHERFUHHâSHHHHâHIIIIIT!!!âÂ
Vision momentarily blacked out and burning with tears mixed with your running mascara, your pussy still reeling from the sheer magnitude of Gojos long girthly length now all the way sheathed and practically tearing through your womb. Your eyes are firmly lodged in the back of your head, the electrifying vibrations cause you to drop the phone entirely. Your world is spinning from experiencing your first small orgasm that only increased intensity as your efforts to escape Gojo are in vain.Â
Your cervix is screaming at the probing intrusion of his bulbous tip ramming so far up into you but Gojo has you anchored to him unable to flee from his onslaught of thrusts.
If you could string together a coherent thought you would have wondered if in fact your stomach had been relocated next to your lungs as you felt so full you couldnât breathe.Â
Your pussy violently spasms around his girth, creamy fluids seeping down onto his base from your cunt sloshing around him. Gojo grips your cheeks spreading you wider increasing the squelching noises echoing from your cunt.
Shit though, Gojo thinks your perfect pussy might actually break his dick off from how fervently you were clenching him.Â
Tongue fully lolled out of your mouth, youâre grasping onto Gojoâs shoulders for stability as your saliva drips down his pectorals.
âBUNNY!! Are you still there?? Whatâs that noise?â
Shoko and Utahimeâs calls for you go unanswered. Gojo on the other hand is grinning, albeit through gritted teeth, pleased at how his long trunk-like cock is rendering you nonverbal.Â
âHehe, you definitely came a bit that time didnât yaâya nasty lilâ Bunny, donât lie.âÂ
âN-N-Nooo T-Toruâsâlike I-I c-canât breatheââ
âHeh, aâcourse you can baby Bunâthat's what it feels like when you cum, even I know that.â
SMACK!
Another firm smack to your ass has your cunt quivering wildly.
You feel like the virgin in this situation nowâand honestlyâare you not?Â
Did those other dicks really count?Â
It felt like you were having sex for the first time as this was a totally different experience even from the earlier round with Gojo.
âDonât worry though, now that I know what kinda shit youâre intoâIâmma take care of that pervy lilâ princess pussy sooo good, Bunny.â
Oh godâThat couldnât be true could it?Â
Spanking? Nipple twisting? Having your insides pushed up to your throat?Â
You didnât actually like this kinda freaky shit did you?
Yet your bodyâs reactions remain true even if your mind doesn't want to accept the cause of the fire that is burning within you. Your pussy is in raptures at the feeling of being molded into the exact shape of Gojoâs cockâveins and all.
âHELLLOOOOO BUNNY!!!!â
Absolutely pleased with himself Gojo retrieves the phone.
âAwe p-poor thing, just stubbed her toe runninâ from me. MyâSHIIIâroom isâFUHHHâk-kinda a m-messâS-See? I almost tripped just now too. Isnât that right Bunny?â
Gojo brings the phone closer and you bat it away wishing he would just hang up and spare you the humiliation. Although humiliation seemed to be your new kink as mirroring his earlier actions as youâre pathetically moaning into his skin. Gojoâs masculine scent, mingled with the salty aroma of perspiration, floods your senses, making you feel even more lightheaded, increasing the sloshing of his cock buried deep in your cunt.
The crude noises that rang from your bodies squelching and slapping against each other renders Gojo unable to keep up the charade either. Making up a quick excuseâhe has to go get ice for your toeâhe quickly hangs up on Shoko and Utahime whose puzzled protests of concern he couldnât give a single fuck about anymore.Â
God fucking you while on the phone with them was so fucking hot, heâd have to get you to do it againâmaybe with Suguru next time, heâd probably even be into it.
âHey B-Bunnyây-you think Shoko and Hime were naked too?â
You groan.
This fucking hentai otaku pervâyou already told him that they were helping Shokoâs parents!Â
You want to glare, scream, chastise, get upâbut you canâtâyouâre at the mercy of him ruthlessly drilling up into your cunt and can only heave out tired mewls in reply.
âFuuuckâimma cum again soon! Do you feel the way your naughty lilâ cunt is squeezing like she wants to wring me dry, wanât me to give it all to your pussy Bunny?â
âN-Not i-inside mâpussy, T-Toru!âÂ
A devious smirk appears.Â
Heh, yeah he promised not inside your pussy.
Without warning Gojo rips his cock out from your sopping core and manhandles you onto your back. Thinking he will simply cum outside somewhere you're finally able to breathe again and you exhaleâonly to feel his monstrous length being shoved down your throat.
Your eyes shoot open.Â
Greeted with the image of Gojo's heavy balls in your face, his ball hairs tickle your nose as you gag around his girth straining your throat open wide. You think if he didnât reach your lungs through your guts he certainly would now that heâs eight and a half inches down your esophagus.
âYou said i couldnât cum in your pussy Bunny, so letâs use that pretty lilâ mouth pussy insteadâsweet fuck, ya know sheâs almost tighter than your actual cunt.â
Your hands fly to the outside of his thighs pawing over the sweat glossed skin as you drag your nails down them, leaving welts in an effort to get him to ease up. The potent musk of your shared lust that had dripped down his balls was now rubbing on your face assaulting your senses.Â
It was fucking nasty, so gross and yet your own pussy betrayed youâburning with an ache to be filled again at the smells that stimulated your own primal hedonistic urges.
âAwe, donât be like that. I know you like it rough, yeah? I havenât forgotten about you either baby.â
Gojo of course at this point isnât talking to you but your cunt.
With one hand squeezing your already constricted airway, Gojoâs other snaked its way over your body and reeling it back before delivering a mean open palmed slap to your clit.Â
The sound of your soaked cunt echoed through his room and he almost came from that alone as your fluids trickled out of you faster, further soiling his expensive sheets.
âThis pussy likes being spanked more than those cherry cheeks of yours huh, Bunny? I know my filthy hentai pussy does.â
Youâre obviously unable to answer but the way youâre gurgling moans around his cock lets him know this is exactly what you like. Thrusting two thick fingers into your quivering core his burly appendages bullied themselves in as far as they could go.Â
âYou knowâG-God, FUCK youâre tightâBunny, you know I read in an h-manga how girls can squirt from a lack of air and a little bit of prodding, sâpposeâS-SHIIIâtâbe something in here that sends em absolutely wild.â
Fingers searching deeper it's not until Gojo pulls back to add a third that he scrapes past a firm spongy spot that has your legs buckling.
Astonished by the amazingly sexy reactions of your bodyâGojoâs eyes are blown out wide over how much your clit swells, your hole twitches and your juices spurt out of you as your tears run over your cheeks to wet his balls further. Gojo doesnât even need to thrust as your throat tightens around him like crazy with him jamming his fingers into that particular spot over and over.
Lost in your own ecstasy youâre proven wrong as contrary to your belief you thought his otaku sex-ed would be to his detriment to his skills. However it's exactly because of all of the lecherous and depraved shit he collected and consumed did he know exactly what to do to you now that got you all messed up. Eyes lodged into your skull, squirting and practically blacking out with his dick stuffed down your throat on his long dexterous fingers abusing your cunt.
âSHIIIIIITââ
With a keen grunt Gojo cums, pumping loads of viscous fluid down your throat forcing you to gorge on his thick cum.Â
âF-Fuck Bunny are you a throat goat? M-Milked me dry...â
Heâs still driving his pliable fingers in and out of you, his arms are shaking from his own orgasm but he doesnât care. Nothing on earth could stop him from replicating the beautiful sight of your pretty lilâpussy spurting out juices that run all the way down his forearm.
ââŠheh, looks like I can milk you too, Bunny.â
Gojo finally dislodges his dick out of your throat but still runs a hand through your pussy folds to rub soothing circles on your clit. You whimper through your coughs as you spit up some of his cum, still gagging after what were mere minutes but seemed like hours of choking on his beefy cock.
Vision spotty, tremors run through your bodyâboth ends so thoroughly fucked outâthat it doesnât register that Gojo is once again lifting your body bringing you towards the edge of the bed.
If you thought Gojo was going to give you aftercare from having used your body like one of his anime fleshlights, youâd be correctâbut not before one last round.Â
Lifting your hips off his luxe bed Gojo positions your wobbly legs on his shoulders. His eyes are blown out and crazed with his own twisted perversion. Weakened and spent himself as cock twitched from overstimulation but heâs never been a quitterâdetermined to make you cum again and again before one of you finally passes out.
Your toes wiggle and you keen as his tongue ravenously dips between your toes. Trailing his tongue past the arch of your foot to bite your heel.
âYouâre so fucking sexy, Bunnyâthe best pussy in the whole world, how could you ever think she was broken? You were just waiting for me to use her huh?â
âS-shut upâToru, j-jeezâŠâ
Your windpipes had been fucked raw and youâre croaking which to your dismay only seems to turn Gojo on more and heâs tapping his tender engorged cockehead on your clit. Your brows pinch together as you bite back moans from his frenulum catching and chafing so wonderfully over your clitoral hood.
âPuhleaseeee, Honey Bunny! Let me fuck you a bit more now that we know you are as ecchi coded as I am, mâkay my pervy princess?â
The very thought shames you and you think your heart might seize from embarrassment if it doesnât give out from pleasure first and your heart feels like it might beat out of your chest chest from all the pet names Gojo is bestowing upon you.Â
âToruâŠâ
You try to reason with him through your defeated huffs as you press your legs shut together.
â...y-you made me cum from your fingers nâ your cock.. Y-You won. PleaseeeâI-I donât even think I can cum any more.âÂ
Not convinced Gojo pushes your legs back.
âOh, is that right? Letâs ask her then!â
Gojo delivers another smack onto your slippery pussy as if on the command of her new owner your obedient cunt immediately leaks a bit more creamy slick onto his palm.
âSee, baby? She says you can though and that sheâs tired of you running from it Bunnyââ
Still hugging your legs together in his grasp, Gojo lowers himself to rub his cheek against your pussy like it was his favorite pillow.Â
âDonât fret my pervy lilâ pussy I won't let Bunny deprive you any longer from what you really need.â
You groan yet Gojo is more gentle this time as he gingerly rolls you onto your belly and lifts your hips to slide his giant Agumon pillow underneath.
Urgh, did it have to be this one!?
There's no time for complaints though once Gojo spreads your cheeks wide. A glob of spit hits your crack as his thumb prods against your shy puckering rear hole while he humps his cock between the fat of your thighs through your soggy swollen folds.Â
âShiiit imma fuck this tight lilâ bunny hole next time baby, mâkay?â
The threat causes you to shudder yet all your back talk and sass is gone from his illicit preparations as he elicits heady mewls from your hoarse throat. Your cunt flutters eagerly to have him fill you again as his fingers imprint themselves into your bottom.
The anticipation is so intense as bracing for his size ripping through you you nearly fail to notice Gojo is now humming to himselfâhummingâTHE DIGIMON CHAMPIONS THEME SONG!?
OH HE HAD YOU ALL THE WAY FUCâ
âAnd suddenly youâre screaming again, eyes glued to the back of your skull as his hips jerk forward, drilling his dick past your walls to pound directly into your cervix with the tempo of a madman.
OH FUCK! âŠsâgood!
You finally surrender letting your cunt control your brain as you throw ass back to meet his frenzied thrusts. Like a drug addict from the first real taste your pussy is already addicted to the feeling of his cock destroying you.
âSâtoruâSâtoruâSâtoruâFUHHHHCK!â
His name fell from your lips like a mantra, the only word your brainânow thoroughly fucked smoothedâcould remember.
The sight of you chasing your own pleasure as your ass slammed back onto his pelvis, your skin rippling as it bounced and splashed frothy fluids onto his abs sent him further into perverse degeneracy.Â
âF-Fuck Bunnyâbaby, this pussy too goodâWe canât tell Suguru for a while, kay? Heâll want to fuck you too and this pussy is just fâme. Suguru gets all the pussy sâtell me youâll keep yours fâer me. Thought you were broken but you just needed my cock this whole timeââ
Burying your face in the sheets bashfully at the mention of Suguru, your cunt pulls more taut around Gojoâs cock.
ââFUHH, g-go out with me yeah, Bunny? Love you sâmuchâSHIIIITâbuy you whatever you wantât-take you where you wantâthis dick sâyours Bun Bunâall yours!â
Plunging into deeper if it were even possible Gojoâs blunted nails drug into the fat of your ass and hips, it wouldnât scar but it would certainly add to the inevitable bruising.Â
âIâll never even look at a non 2D woman again as long as I have you as my lilâ onaholeâshit Iâll never even buy one of those again unless it's in the shape of your pussyâF-FUCK, w-waitây-you think we could get one made in the shape of your pussyâmy girlfriendâs perfect pussy?!â
Itâs too muchâtoo overwhelming and your mind is slowly but surely being corrupted by Gojo. Otherwise the image of him whining while fucking a onahole casted from your cunt as he watches you finger yourself would have never in a million years popped into your mind.Â
Determined to see you unhinged in every respect, Gojo didnât want to deny you pleasure but if he had to be a little mean to you so you could finally be honest with him then so be it.Â
Slowly pulling out, your expression is near frantic as you look back at him. Your mouth gaping and babbling nonsensically for him not for him to stopâyou were so close.
Gojo simpers, relishing in your cute cockdrunk face scrunched with confusion from him pulling out so suddenly.Â
âW-Words baby, câmon I just spilled my heart out here!â
Your pussy weeps longingly for Gojoâs cock as your body shakes with a yearning begging to be filled again.Â
God help you, you want him.Â
You want him and his sinfully curved demon dick badly, itâs all you could think aboutïżœïżœNot even remembering what life was like before he so perversely rearranged your guts. However, not only did he know how to hit all your spots, he knew youâand despite him completely disregarding all of the rules you had initially set, he was the first guy who actually cared about how you felt during sex, even if he was a perverted otaku.
There was simply no use in denying it any longer.Â
You caved.
Tears streaming down your face as you hiccupped your admission of affections for him, red-faced and flustered.
âSâtoru, I-Iâll be your girlfriendâneed you nâneed your cock sâmuchââ
Pressing the side of your face against the mattress you bring a shaky hand through your legs, fingers slipping over your slick as you part your pussy lipsâyour vacant core exposed and fluttering, begging for him just as hard.
ââmâalso youâre onahole T-Toru, I promise iâll only fuck you, j-just please keep fucking me, i wanna cum on your cock, want your cum in me Toru baby!â
You might die from the shame of it all once you sober up from being utterly cockdrunk and stupefied but all you could think about right now was Gojoâs hard dick laying heavy pipe back into your cunt.
Something snaps in Gojo.
Head over heels for you now, Gojo knew from that moment on heâd never let you go.Â
Real or 2Dâno could compare to you in Gojoâs eyes.Â
Toru finally found something he loved more than digimonâyour perfect lilâpussy.
And he was going to show her how much he loved her right now.
Taking what was so graciously presented to him this time around, youâre short circuiting once heâs finally inside you again your most base needs being satiated turning you into a cockfiendish whore crying for him to fuck you harder as you grip his sheets like you could rip them apart.Â
His strokes become more merciless, unrelenting on your pussy and Gojo leans his weight onto your back, legs bent crouching on top of you, his hips becoming manic they thrashed forward in short heavy thrusts to hammer you into the mattress.
Gojo himself is beyond gone.Â
Disregarding all promises of mentioning otaku shit while he was wrecking your cunt. Â
âFuck bunny this feels better then what I thought Agnewomonâs pussy would be likeâ you'd look so sexy in that cosplay. Gonna have you dress up for me and show you off at cons. Iâll buy you whatever you want, anything, the whole fucking world yeah? Just fuckâwear those those vibrating panties while you cosplay too, youâd like that?â
You tightened groaning at his debauchery, something that was not missed at all by Gojo who by this point had fucked his own self dumb in your angelic cunt. White strands of his hair stuck to both of your faces as he tiled your head back so he could see how desperately those little hearts danced in your dilated pupils before they were reduced to nothing more than mere splotches whiting out your vision.
âFuck u really are a slut huh bunny? Tightening at the thought of all those otaku perverts looking at you in that skimpy outfit while I control the buzzing on that lil clit. But they canât have youâmâthe only otaku pervert that knows how to make you cum!â
Delirious with melodic honeyed cries spilling from you, you just wanted him to stop talkingâpointing out every single time your body responded to his ecchi tastes becoming your tastes and now just yearning for a taste of him.Â
Reaching back youâre pulling him down to smash your lips together. Messy, but you could care as Gojo tried to swallow your tongue fucking his own into your mouth with a force that matched his cock. If fucking you was heaven then kissing you was nirvanaâheâd give you the whole world if he could keep fucking you like this forever.
Gojo needs you to cum again soon as the feral need breed your tummy until it swells with his seed has him losing the little sanity he even had to begin with. A virgin until today heâd saved up so much waiting for your tight cunt this whole time.Â
Moving his lips away from yours only for air, your chest heaves harmonies cries from his hand weaving under your bodies. Jittery fingers swiped frantically over your clit, hurling you towards your euphoric climax as his lips descend back upon yours.
âCum BunnyâI got ya baby.â
Deliberately plowing himself harder against your cervix, your body seizes up releasing tension into pure white energy that you swore was pumping through your every vein as an extension of your pussy as his heavy load spurts to paint your walls and sear your insides as his thrusts continue to swill his seed inside you, pushing it further into your wombâ-thank fuck for birth control.
However that was the last thing you remember before you go limp, temporarily blacked out as you swear youâve transcended to a celestial plane of existence. One where all slutted out souls went to escape from the unearthly pleasure theyâve been tortured by. You donât know how long youâve been out but you're squirming as you come back to consciousness. Realizing your now back on your back as your hips involuntarily rocking against something thick and wet.Â
When you finally manage to open your eyes you're greeted by Gojo tongue slurping at your clit and lapping up the cum oozing out of your battered hole like it was a refreshingly creamy bowl of kakigori. His hands embedded themselves into your thighs pinning them to the bed nibbling on your clit and having your already overstimulated core climaxing on his tongue once more.
Strings of your sticky nectar connect his tongue to your cunt as he looks up at you. Having the audacity to grin lovingly at you as if he didnât look like a downright starved and deranged man with a sheen of shared fluids dribbling down his chin. Heâs pussy drunk once again this time buzzed off the pungent yet sweet taste of his cum marinating in your creamy tenderized cunt. Â
Gojo is cheesinâ at you like heâs found his favorite spot in the worldâand he had as far as he was concerned.
âYou said it was too messy, remember Bunny? The least I can do to make it up to you is scoop every drop out of your runny lilâ cunt with my tongue! What kind of boyfriend would I be to have all this cum soaking my Bunnyâs slutty little thong and spilling down her thighs while out to dinnerâso I decided to have mine a little early.â
FUCKING HELLâDINNER! What time was it?!Â
Disordented, your head is fuzzy and you could feel the soreness settling in your muscles. You didnât think youâd be able to get out of this bed in the next 24 hours, let alone make it to dinnerâif you hadnât already missed it!Â
âNnnn, n-not like I can go anymore Toru, sâall your f-fault!â
Your bruised lips poke out into pout. Gojo chuckles at you how cute you look and he rises up from between your thick thighs to boop you on the nose as he gazes adoringly at you.
âI know princess mâsorryâI already texted Shoko saying you couldnât, donât worry~~â
But your eyes widened as you were now fully worried.Â
Worried as to what the fuck Gojo actually texted them!Â
âT-Toruââ
ââI just told them you werenât feeling well, was that okay?â
Quickly assuaging your fearsâyou can relax a bit for now (although you were sure youâd have a lot of explaining to do later) as Gojo pulls you to him again and softly kisses your neck, hands returning to your ass to rub soothing circles on your chaffed skin.Â
Relaxing again floods sleep into your eyes. A welcome godsend honestly, so you can process everything that just happened, especially Gojo aggressively fucking a love confession out of you.Â
âAnd mâsorry if I got carried away Bun⊠but you were so good for me, so fucking perfect! Just relax and Iâll take care of you! Iâll handle everythingâfor you and your nasty lilâ cunt. I love you both and Iâll keep both my pretty girls happy forever! I promise!â
Gazing at you with cartoonishly sparkling eyes, you have to look away from Gojo lest your ears altogether burn up in embarrassment from his shameless and yet a hundred percent earnest vocalization of affections that somehow still got your heart racing.
ââoh and my parents will be here tomorrowâwe can tell them right? They will be so excited! They've been telling me since I was little I shouldnât let you get away! Ooo! Ooo! Maybe now that we're dating theyâll let us use their sex dungeon! We need to think of a safe word though Bunnyââ
Scarcely comprehending anything he is saying to you, your mind like your pussy had been fully liquified. Both ruthlessly corrupted by Gojoâs long otaku cock and pervy ass fantasies which is no surprise seeing as his family even owns aâ
HOLâ THE ENTIRE FUCKUPâA SEX DUNGEON!?
Like a shot of caffeine directly into your veins your eyes nearly pop out of your head as you blink at him dumbfounded, mouth hanging open. Â
âDoesnât that sound fun, Bunny!? My parents are so cool! When I turned 18 my dad even gave me some of his rare and one-of-a-king hentai figures for my collection to get me started and thenââ
Tuning him out youâre gagged at the unexpected revelationsâand his parents always seemed like such charming nâ decent God fearing people too. Well known to be ruthless in the business world, but upstanding global philanthropists nonetheless.
Well the apple sure as hell didnât fall too far from the sordid sex fiend tree, that was for damn sure!
Clearly you had no idea what you were getting yourself into or had unleashed by agreeing to be Gojoâs girlfriend. I mean, could no longer deny your growing feelings for himâplus he did just give you multiple back-breaking-terrifyingly-mind-numbing-earth-shattering-orgasms. Not to mention, you would definitely be getting one of every Hermes bag ever made if you wanted oneâbut at what cost?
Your Dignity?Â
Self-respect?Â
The right to call yourself a functional and contributing non-degenerate member of society?
Who knows reallyâŠ
Although perhaps dating a Gojo, the next heir at that, youâd be too rich and highly regarded for people to even care (weâll except for your friends giving yâall hell but you could eventually make peace with that).
You internally groan as the gentle touches on your bottom morph into lustful gropes and you know your brand new boyfriend would not be granting rest for your totally demolished lilâ pussy anytime soon unless you could distract him a bit.
ââToru, Toru baby listen, please.â
Interrupting him, you muster the energy to put on the sweetest face you can manage in your exhausted state.Â
And of course, Gojo, as always and yet unknowingly, tests the limits of your tolerance.
âYes, my whittle Bunny, my kinky baby girlâhentai goddess divine?â
Gojo nuzzles your nose in an eskimo kiss as he showers you with âloving complimentsâ.Â
Scrunching your face, you grit your teeth through your already weak smile to stop yourself from losing it at him referring to you as âhentai goddess divineââyâall would definitely be having a talk about that as well as appropriate in-public pet names later though.
âBabyyyyyâIâm so sticky and sore, why donât you be a good boyfriend and get stuff ready for us to take a bath, hm? Maybe find me something else to wear too, hm?â
You did need a bath and you calculated even with his energetic disposition it should take him at least 15-20 minutes to delegate the tasks and get everything together considering how huge his mansion was.
âOh! Of course, of course! Just wait here! Iâll be right back, my ecchi angel.â
Brow-twitching you sit up to wave at him with another strained smile as he scrambles to put on pants and heads out of his room.
You sigh tiredly and make yourself comfy on his cloud like pillows.Â
Thinking heâs finally left and you can savor some much needed time to make peace with what you got yourself into by agreeing to be the girlfriend of an otaku nerd like Gojo Satoruâ
âwhen his head suddenly peaks back in the room with a sheepish look on his face.
âHeh, you know Bunny, was thinkingâyou really didnât think I could code crack your cute lilâ cunt now did ya?â
Your eyes are closed but your fists are balling angrily gripping onto the pillows surrounding you.
âDonât worry Bunny, yours is the only pussy my dick is digidestined for!â
With that, Gojo narrowly avoids the Agumon pillow plushie that is swiftly hurled at his head as he dashes away from the door, his merry yet hysterical laughter echoing through the halls.
©blkkizzat 2024. do not steal works or gfx, do not translate.
â a/n: this fic was wayyyy too long but i've been kinda mean to y'all gojo glazers lately rejoicing in your sorrows cause you are now miserable like the rest of us lmfao, so consider this y'alls bone :P tbh im kinda surprised this is the first full gojo fic i've written lol, it was fun tho cause otaku!gojo is a freak for pussy would drive you insane in all the right and wrong ways. i still have invisible man gojo and ceo/professor gojo planned tho (plus that frat boy satosugu request).
eta: serieslist
reblogs and comments are my life's blood ty ᄫᥠ.á
#âá°đđŸđđđ¶đÂąÏÏĐșŃ#âá°đđŸđđđ¶đÂąÏÏĐșŃâŃĐœÎ±Ń#gojo satoru smut#gojo x reader#jujutsu kaisen smut#jjk smut#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jjk x reader#gojo smut#gojo satoru x reader#gojo x you#gojo x y/n#gojo headcanons#gojo thirst#satoru x reader#satosugu#shokohime#jjk crack#crack fic#anime fanfics#anime fanfic#jjk fanfic#gojo satoru#jjk gojo#satoru gojo#satoru x you#geto x reader#geto x you
15K notes
·
View notes
Text
ch.4: again &. again (platonic! yandere batfam x neglected! gn reader)
directory: preq, chapter one, chapter two, chapter three, chapter four, chapter five pt 1
read until the end for an author's note.
tw: self-esteem issues, alcohol abuse, allusions to self-harm.
"baby bird, i know i haven't been talking to you much as of lately. but i just want to let you know that we miss you alright?"
not delivered.
"i really regret ignoring you, we all do. i'm-"
he hesitates, then deletes the last word of his message.
"âwe're the ones in the wrong for everything, alright? you blocked me, i'm sure you did for everyone else too, i get that, but we care for you now and that won't change anytime soon. please remember that."
not delivered.
"and it pains me seeing that you're not replying to my messages at all, baby bird. but i promise i'll-"
dick bites his lips at the mistake of addressing himself only rather than that of the family, but a greedy part of him wants you to read the messages and to see only him in spite of everything rather than them, feeling a sense of... need to be the first and only one you see when you think about accepting their apologies, even if he's writing to you whilst simultaneously trying to get his family in your good graces.
dick doesn't know it. why he's suddenly obsessed with you. you? yes you, his stupidly precious sibling, the one who looked up to him, frail and wronged by the world, with so much drive behind that stare. third child of bruce, yet second youngest in the family. the one that got away, the one he has never once saw outside that one memory of glinting, awe-inspired eyes that told more stories than poets, drew more emotions than artists.
nobody saw you outside of your status as the manor's ghostâ but compared to your other siblings, he knew you the most. he wants to be the only man good enough to be considered your brother, your oldest brother; an obligation he's willing to uptake just for you. he wants to be the only one with the authority to call you his baby bird. he doesn't know why, despite the thirteen and a half years, it's him wanting, no, needing to see you again.
you, just you.
every bits and pieces of you.
in his mind, it's just him and you. in your tiny little bedroom, with your dozens of sketchbooks and diaries, with only your brother, dick, to accompany you. in your own little world, as you speak to him of your dreams and passions with nothing else in your mind. you'd look up at him with sparkling eyes, look at him like he means everything in the world to you, and he'd see you as his world.
when he thinks of that, the more he hopes of the possibility of you reading his messages; his declaration of never leaving you alone anymore. and with hope comes along this dread that you'd reply with a nasty reply, or that... you'll never bat an eye him anymore.
dick doesn't take a second glance to correct his mistake again this time.
"i promise i'll be better for you baby bird. my little hatchling, my little one. i discarded you, someone so precious. you must've felt hurt, no? i get that, i'm so sorry you have to go through that because of me. but look! you have me now, we have each other now! and that might not be enough yet to mend the bridge i left to fall, but if you just, please reply to me, or anyone else, then we can fix this. i promise, baby bird."
not delivered.
"you won't ever feel hurt anymore, or sad or lonely. hell, even bruce is getting you a new bedroom fixed up, isn't that great!? i'll even convince the old man to make sure your room is close to my old one so you can visit me anytime. i'll even stay over at gotham for even longer, just for you! and i'll spend my time with you, with just the two of us, okay? nobody else can disturb us. i'm sure you'd like that too."
not delivered.
"and we can hang out anytime you want, no? sleepovers, movie nights, journallingâ all the cool stuff you wanted to do with me in the past, we can do now! and it'll be fun with you, i can see it happening alrrady, i just know it. you can't convince me otherwise, baby bird."
not delivered.
"that's why i'm begging you to unblock me, little one, or to at least read all my previous messages, please? :( i'm still so sorry over how i treated you in the past. i've nothing to defend myself over how i acted towards you. i was so delusional, ignoring you when all you clearly wanted was to spend time with me, with the family."
not delivered.
"we can even have that dinner together, remember?! at that fancy restaurant you talked about, yeah? my treat, of course. you can order the entire damn menu and i'll leave you room for seconds and desserts. i can even make arrangements to get bruce to rent out the entire restaurant so it would just be the two of us plus the family, but mostly just usâ that would be good! then you can sleep at my room after we get home to the manor since we're turning your old one into an atelier just for you! i'll even carry your cute little figure up any flight of stairs whenever you get tired."
not delivered.
"i promise i'll really make it up to you baby bird!!! <3"
not delivered.
"for all the times we neglected you, left you thinking you didn't deserve a spot in the manor (which you truly do, it's us to blame for never seeing it that way), made you feel negative emotions towards usâ i'll take your pain and turn that into joy, i promise."
not delivered.
"and if you do manage to read through all this, please remember..."
not delivered.
"i love you so much, alright? we'll find you soon, and you'll be happier with us, i'm sure of it. i love, love, love you so much my baby bird."
not delivered.
he sighs, resigning his thoughts all to himself as he checks his phone every minute for a simple ring of notifications just from you. he prefers to leave his phone in silent mode from the multitude of other contacts bothering him, but god forbade if that means he'd scroll past to a single reply of yours, then he'd rather burn in hell.
and anything is better than the pain inflicted on him when it comes to the thought of you ignoring him.
because after all, he does mean it when he says he loves you, his baby bird, his adorable little sibling.
he'd rather hell than you seeing him any less of an older brother.
what takes longer? is it a seed growing into a bud, a bud into a bloom, or a flower to fully shrivel and die?
how long does it take for it to be considered worthy? deserving of attention and the rightful spotlight to attain its needs for life?
what takes its time? what other variable does it need for it to survive in such harsh conditions? if it's forcefully pried open as a seedling, as a bud growing in a field full of weeds sapping, draining it of its nutrition, or in a scorching, desolate desert, or pestilent lands; would it still be considered a flower?
what does a seed need to grow into a flower? beautiful, treasured, with vibrant colors reflecting off the surface of each petal, growing pollen for every pollinator to spread its bountiful success you call development?
what does it require?
everyone knows the answer, some could only be ignorant enough to turn the other way and reject the idea altogether.
it needs care, nourishment â healthy soil building a strong foundation, its home with roots carefully embedded in the ground, then it also requires water, a source of life given to it in specific times with just the right dose, and sunlight kissing its stems and petals warmly â and finally, love.
lots of love, attention, and patience from mother nature herself and its caretakers we call humans.
but how could a flower receive any, if not, all it needs, if it's raised under a marshy, overgrowth rainforest that speaks of death and cruel poachers that could step on the bloom of any moment?
how could a flower live, let alone survive, if its careless caretakers who took it away from its fertile lands neglect it of its requirements to grow and bloom into its rightful imagery?
just how?
you are a flower.
and you will wilt soon the longer you live in what you once thought was your home.
growing in cracked, dry soil, with no water nor sunlight aiding your growth.
you are a flower.
who had been loved by your creator, mother nature herself; your mother. but you've never once felt the care nor love of your cruel humans you call family, your father had never once saw your budding petals, kissed it, patiently watered or spent time outside in the sunlight with you. your brothers don't notice your dehydrated pets, shriveled leaves and bent stems, nor do they tend to it. your sisters don't decorate the pot you reside it, they don't talk to you every time you sag down in loneliness and isolation as you are forced to stay in the same place and witness the same scenarios over and over again.
not much knows it, but flowers, much like any plant, can communicate, they can feel. and when they do, they do deeply.
and you are a flower. a flower worthy of being pressed into books, storing your beauty forever. a flower worthy of being situated into a stunning arrangements of bouquets, worshipped through birthdays, dates, weddings, and even funerals.
you're a flower, and you're beautiful and deserving of praise and honor from your stages in life as a seed, from a bud, to a blooming flower. yet you're neglected the same way ignorant trespassers would step on growing blooms, uncaring for sabotaging their life completely, and oh-so easily.
you're a flower, a symbol of nature's fertility, resilience, and tranquility.
you symbolize your mother's long standing determination to care for a child whose father looked other ways but her. who raised her seedling with care, watered them with stories of fairytales: fantasies about prince charmings who take their flowers away from barren lands to spoil them with rich soil and neverending sunlight, about princesses who stop by flower shops to awe at the arrangements of bouquets, eyes glazing with fervor as they recount each and every symbolism every unique flower shares.
your mother places you in your favorite, decorated pot: your shared bedroom with her, and she kisses your cheeks, your forehead, your chubby little fingers, the same way the illuminating sunlight kisses at your flushed body whenever you two would go out for your walks.
she was your mother nature, and you were her precious flower.
you were once a blooming bud then, and you wished you would still bloom now.
how could you grow into what you're worth, when even you couldn't grow without the love that was taken from you?
what about the care, the patience, the determination she once held in her warm gaze, now cold and fading with life the last time you saw her; would it all be a waste?
how could you grow now?
and yet you don't even need to ponder for solutions. the answers were clear, clear as the water your petals used to bathe in, clear as the rain that pitters against alfred's car windows the same day you were taken away from your mother's holdâ
you simply wilt.
8:31PM.
your friend said she'd pick you up quarter to nine, so you'd at least have the time to prepare and make yourself look good. but right now...
god, right now, you don't feel anything good, not even a wee bit of it at all. ever since he texted you, you feel like shit, utterly repulsed. vile, like the image of you vomiting every contents of your stomachâ and now you're going out drinking with an empty one. you can already feel the bitter taste of heavy alcohol mixing in with the acids of your stomach.
you can already feel the breakdown you're having right now as you remember how fucking broke and useless you are for having to ask your friends to treat you to drinking because you have nothing left to offer beyond the fucking taxes you have to pay and the nearly due rent and bills.
you have nothing to offer. you're so shitty. you deserve to die.
the more you stare at the mirror, the more your eyebags seem to deepen, your lips began to dry, and the pit in your chest sunken.
and that makes you exhale even deeper, ignoring the way your throat constricts on itself in instinct.
your eyes flitter to your fingers, nails bitten, skin ripped at the seems with dry blood staining chipped cuticles.
when you looked back at your reflection, you want to cry even more, seeing an image of a moving pile of flesh. all puffy skin and sagging eyes.
you don't remember the last time you felt pretty about yourself.
whether it was in the manor, or back when your mother was the only one raising youâ it seems like your memories are in shambles right now.
you don't remember the last time you looked in a mirror, looking healthy, fresh, and proud of yourself for dressing up in your style. in the back of your mind, there will always be hatred, resentment for how you look. and right now, you hate how you every bit of your appearance because...
because you look exactly just like an image of your mother and bruce wayne. a reminder, your punishment for your parents' beautifully tragic affair with one another. a billionaire who courted the lowly dirt-class slut of gotham.
yet you're uglier because you're not them, you couldn't be them. you're not picture-perfect brucie with slick-black hair and a face like fine-aged wine, or the image of your sultry, "man-eater" mother in her lingerie. you're just, youâ you've inherited all the stupid flaws you wished you could shave off your damn body.
you remember seeing your father's face in television with your mother beside you by the couch, combing your hair and giggling when your eyes had lit up at the sight of the rich man. you haven't once took your eyes off the news channel whenever he appeared, looking at bruce, always enamored with his aesthetics, only to never notice your mother's tired eyes, or how shaky her fingers would sometimes become.
"momma, that's daddy, right?!" you asked her whilst the side of your body was pressed against hers, with all the enthusiasm a child could muster. your grin was wide, eyes peeled to the screen, enough to ignore the flinch in your mother as you had once thought it was her igniting with the same excitement as yours.
she simply leans down and kisses your cheeks, her eyes, a beautiful shade of your eyes color, albeit lighter in hue, never once left the crown of your small head, ignoring the headline for the news about 'brucie's new fling caught on camera!'.
your mother was so glad you were still illiterate at your age. she wish she could never break off the illusion that it was her who simply birthed to you, with no face for a father. maybe you would've never ask her about why he had never once came to visit your small family, why you could never meet your other siblings, or why he's seen with multiple other women by his side every time you open the television.
you ask at frequent intervals; it makes her wish to strip away the past in which she chose to tell you who your father was. you would've experienced less heartbreak, she would've never seen the way your eyes would dim at her every excuse, or the way she felt your heart crack at the seams, only further breaking hers.
yet after a while, she replies and buries her thoughts, ignoring the tears that lid her eyes. with not so much enthusiasm in her light voice, with the undertones of guilt and sorrow digging deep throat her throat, but it was enough for young, little you to jump on your springy couch with her response.
"... oh, yes, that's your papa...! isn't he so nice lookingâ?"
"and handsome! i'm so lucky to have such beautiful parents! i wish i was as pretty as you, momma, and daddy too!"
when you had looked up with haste, glinting eyes staring up at her with a wide grin, some baby teeth still present, others absent from your gums, yet you displayed admiration no less; your mother just as quickly wipes her red eyes and sniffling nose with the worn sleeves of her sweater and reciprocates your beaming energy with a small smile.
she wishes you'd dismiss her previous melancholic expression, replacing it with the same fond, yet tired gaze she always offers you, wishing you'd be as oblivious to the pain it brings her to see your hopes and dreams of meeting a father you could only admire through a screen or article. yet you're always so perceptive, so interlinked with her reactions that she's sure that one of the few positive traits your father had given you. she should've expected your words, yet her broken heart finds a path to heal whenever you sense her pain and soft a bandage to the cracks of her bleeding scars with your kindness.
you would always be her little flower. the one she'd nurture in a garden filled with rosy bushes and scarring thorns.
"âyou're so beautiful, momma, even if you cry because daddy isn't here with us, or you're too tired taking care of me. you're beautiful because you're my mother, and i'll take you over everything in the world..."
and you tell her, an inaudible whisper to your voice, with eyes that were once wide, beaming with joy, now gazing at her with softness like the wind kissing blades of grass in a gentle dance. you look at her, and she stares back, eyeing your chubby cheeks and lips the same shape of hers, the ends of your lashes curves the same way as hers, and your voice matches her like a lullaby when you speak every vowel in a soothing lilt.
you calm the hurt in her chest, replacing it with a mellow warmth. she even forgot the tears that slowly dripped her eyes, all replaced with the comfortable softness of her precious child's palms, smooth and cozy, resting on both of her cheeks as you pepper her crying face with kisses.
she holds both your palms caging her, and allows the your hold to linger for longer. the silence ensues, yet you both embrace the unsaid assurances.
it's times like these where she realizes you encapsulate the beauty of both worlds.
it's moments like this, she sees herself in you, and maybe she could lead herself to believe that she is beautiful, because she sees her beauty through her child, her grace.
the memory only further deepens the guilt in your heart.
if there's one word to describe you now. it would be disgrace. to your father's honor, and your mother's legacy. for easily letting yourself go, for being so weak, for being the line that jumps between two polar opposites of one another; trying to traverse their path of belonging.
you're a disgrace, a mistake, and you deserve to be treated as such.
it was why you never find yourself beautiful. a person such as yourself would always find allure, worth in all things chaotic - you live in gotham after all - but never find that same value in yourself as you look at your reflection that distorts your image even more, making you uglier and uglier the longer you look.
split ends everywhere, hand tangled, reddish eyes from nearly crying again.
even if you beat at yourself, erratic and impulsive, even if your skin is colored an ashen blue and purple, rotten shades of yellow and red, you think of yourself ugly and repulsive.
no matter how much color you try to bring into your bleak, repulsive life, at the cost of hurting yourself to become prettyâ every part of you will always be that ugly, little duckling in comparison of your siblings who always outshone you.
dick with his playboy body, jason and his towering one, tim with soft boyish features, damian's silky tan and smooth skin, and duke's baby face.
you couldn't even have your hair frame you as perfectly as steph's light blonde hair does, or share barbara's proportionate face, or look as gracious yet deadly like cassandra.
you're nowhere near as special, you're not like them. you have features too unique, yet out of place, and you couldn't bring yourself to be conventionally good-looking.
you hate yourself so much. you hate every little mole, every little pimple, every damn imperfection that litter your body, making you even lesser than what you already are.
your family; mother, father, brothers and sisters, god, even your fucking friends! every time you sit by them side-by-side, you'd feel insecure, imperfect, an eyesore and you just want to strip away every part of your limbs one by one if that meant replacing it with even better ones; all for the sake of at least feeling pretty.
you remember the first time you tried to find a sense of style, and damian's comment andâ god fucking damn itâ!
your hands found its way to your brushed hair, tangling itself through already fragile strands to rip at the seams. you don't care, you don't fucking care, you pray to any god out there to get them out of your head, pleas unheard, you're always left to hurt.
"what are you trying to achieve with that, huh? what even are you trying to think with that horrendous color combination? what are you, a clown? even that damned joker has more coordination than you think you could achieve."
in front of his friend, jon kent, with a scowl on his ever-so angry face and his hand already making a way to grip his sword; an absolute threat to dice you up shall you ever bother being in the same room as him.
he said that to you... you're older, you could've been stronger, could've at least found a semblance of fight in your bones. but no! god, no. your life was ruled with fear with damian wayne being the demon haunting you in the manor, always making living harder, making breathing a heavy task.
how could you ever fight back? not when you've conditioned yourself to tear up at the slightest bit of noise, feel goosebumps prick your skin when you hear someone raise their voice at you, and your heart rate hasten at the slide of a knife against any surface?
you! you who's so fucking weak to even make a comeback. you, who ran away with wide, traumatized eyes. because you're scared, so fucking fearful of an even bigger cut to your skin marked by damianâ even if you're accustomed to cutting yourself with even deeper gashes.
because it's him that you fear, not the pain, not anymore. just him and his contempt at you for ruining his pure bloodline just by you being his half-sibling.
you don't want a repeat of your first meeting, or any meeting with him at all. not when you'd drown even deeper in a pit of fear every time you stare at his glaring, emerald eyes. one that tells you he chose to merely not kill you out of the goodness of his heart. but he will, god he will if he feels you've been too comfortable in his presence.
every damn time, everytime you feel fear, you see green. you hate green, any literal meaning of it, every implication of itx even seeing it, and fuck! your outfit has green embellishments.
you feel even uglier, yet the twinge of fear immediately overpowers any concern your had with your appearance. it's as if eyes were suddenly on you, and it's not only yours staring at you in the mirror.
your lips wobble, snot began blocking through the passage of your nose.
fuck, fuck, fuck.
why?! why can't you just forget about them all. why, why, why?!
you bite your lips harshly to conceal the pained whimpers from the back of your throat, but it doesn't work. it only makes the fear worse.
tears rim at your eyes, you merely wipe them away. your heart attempts to beat out of its gilded cage, yet you swallow your quivering chokes and proceed to continue staring at yourself in the mirror, dressed in a rush, with nothing to conceal your ghastly eyebags and sunken skin.
and green. you'll see it everywhere now. fuck, would dick send out damian to kill you now? you don't know, you're scared but you can't chicken out, not when your friend is already near to your apartment. god you wish you had beer in your cabinets instead, but you're broke and unprepared for life and your hair's all in a tangle and you just fucking want to die.
your hands grip at the edge of your sink, you look at your mirror and see the blood on your already bitten lips.
not even concealer can cover the damn scars all over your face all through the neck.
calm down.
you stare even deeper at yourself and ignore the green, trying to think of something elseâ
something less emotionally scarring, like your appearance. even if it brings you great pain, too, you'd rather that than your family. no more of them, fuck, no more. even if you stare at your eyes and see that familiar mix of colors of your mother and bruce's eyes. the shape of your face, even the curve of your brows all resembled your late motherâ and you miss her, her captivating beauty that you never saw aged like fine way before she was taken away from you. you see bruce in the strands of your hair and the way it sometimes fray when too stressed. you see them in every image you wish to erase of yourself.
yet your genetics are nothing to them, not when you can't even care for your tangled hair or ashen skin.
even the dead looked more lively than you ever could.
with a pale complexion, with scars that litter all over your shoulders, wrists, and hidden parts of your body, one you're too ashamed to show anybodyâ it was no doubt that you looked pathetic and erased the beauty that both your parent's cultivated. and it makes you wonder; would it really be worth it?
would it be worth it if the people around you see you?
you with your melancholic eyes, trying to find an escape in a maze you call your mind? you can picture yourself drinking alcohol until you reach the domain of death, sitting in a stool, alone, as you nearly empty the contents of your stomach remembering the sole reason why you're there in the first place.
would it be worth it if all eyes suddenly were on you? they turn to you to gaze at the ugly bruises on your body, they mock your appearance, call you names, look at your sniveling, red nose and warm cheeks intoxicated from all the heavy liquor you'd down, and whisper. they'll whisper insults, slurs, and every known jab until it's all their words that pierces through your eyes, until the loud bass becomes mere background chatter for all the gossips that ensue.
are you actually going to do this right now?
you don't know, you don't know and you wish never cared as much.
all you could really focus on was your eminent goal of getting out of your stuffy apartment, to rid of the paranoia that somehow, you're being watched over in the confines of your four walls and that the familiar image of green will come attack you. the more you think, the more the hairs on your skin start to raise with every known intention to signal you of your anxiety.
eyes, they may be everywhere.
eyes, eyes, eyes. as you stare at your eyes, you try to ignore emerald eyes, they dilute even further. you gulp, yet your focus remains distorted. images flash at the mirror, and suddenly they're here, with you, with their eyes. bright blue for some, dark green for another, and they all gaze at you with contempt. one's hand claws at your throat, the other pins your wrist down on the edge of the sink. the eyes glare, and they never soften. yours merely shook, unblinking as your breathing becomes heavier; trapped in the cages of their wanton staring.
you yelp, then blink. when you did, they're gone. and you're back to looking at the same image of yourself. you grimace slowly.
ugly, with dry skin and falling hairs. the worst version of you, the normal version of yourselfâ there was never a best version for you.
as long as it's you, you'll never be enough.
all you wanted was to drink with your friends at a club; some working nightshifts at the location you're going toâ yet you want to back down. want to take your phone by the corner of your vision and cancel your sudden plans.
but you're scared, you're so fucking scared of any new messages.
hell, even finding the contacts for your friends was a task in itself you wish to never repeat. with jittery fingers trying to type of messages and blurry eyes navigating through the screen of your slippery, glass screen protector.
you're scared, rightfully so.
you're scared to find his message once more suddenly popping up, your fingers accidentally pressing on it like the clumsy swine you are, and rereading that damn heart over and over again.
you slam your dominant hand against the tiled sink, hard and uncaring for the pain it induced all throughout your body. the tremors of the impact shook you to your core, yet you seethe in your breath and don't allow yourself respite to let the tears flow freely from your already red eyes. you feel your heart beating erratically through your chest, the shivers controlling your body, the shrieks that you contained within youâ and you enchain them all with no respect for yourself.
you deserve this. you deserve to be hurt, to be punished for your actions, for your mistakes, for your sins.
even if your hand became swollen, splotched with varying shades of disgusting purples and yellows, you won't treat it with medicine. even if the sharp edges of the sink broke the fragile layer of your already scarred palm, and bled profusely with that familiar shade of red; you won't rush to wrap it with gauze or even spare a droplet of betadine. even if by the next day you'd have to write out your overdue assignments with that specific hand, then you'll force yourself to learn through the other and punish yourself again if you fail once more.
you deserve this.
and as your phone pings, lighting up to show you a notification of one of your friend's messages about being ready to pick you up by the lobby of your apartment's ground floor, you ignore your injured hand and the bruises on your knees from falling so abruptly on tiled floors just moment's ago. you dismiss the ache of your head, the soreness of your eyes and the disgusting beat of your heart.
you ignore the pain that wrecks at your entire body, in favor of destroying it even more, just as you deserve.
you don't recall how many shots you had before you're nearly passed out by the bar, sitting on its stool with your head leaning on one both your arms crossed, drool close to slipping out of the corners of your mouth and heavy eyes lidded, about to fall into the depths of sleep.
you're sure you looked wasted, absolutely drop-dead drunk with no thoughts circulating in your head other than the pleasant buzz in your ears and the flash of colors in the disco balls blanketing the entire room with its neon lights. your face must've been an unearthly shade of red, and you can already feel just how blazen it is, and how your fingertips are ice-cold to the touch (probably colder than the marble you lay your arms upon). in other words, you're actually wasted.
and it's so worth it if it means it gets you to forget. and forget you did, because you can't even dig deep into your head to even remember a single memory of whatever grief you went through earlier in your apartment. not even the throb of your head from when you pulled your hair from its roots, all to the way you slammed your dominant hand on your bathroom sink, bruising it with unnatural shades of purples and yellow.
it makes you omit every type of pain, both physically, mentally, and emotionally. it doesn't cure you of your ails, but god forbid you if you just want to savor moments where nothing but a mind numbing headache is the only feeling present in your current state.
the remix of songs were long forgotten in your mind, they all become an amalgamation of miscellaneous sounds. your body is so inclined towards the flat, rectangular cool surface of the marble glass of the bar that you can guarantee you could sleep here, especially since black behan to cloud both your vision and your mind.
everything feels so hazy, and pleasant, and straight-out peaceful that the screaming tandems of equally drunk clubbers and the occasional sobers holding up their friends who sang along with whatever remix the dj comes up with, or the forming crowd as people began to rock and dance to the bass that shakes up the entire floor to the point you can feel vibrations run along your spineâ didn't register within the crevices in your mind.
all you can focus on, is the gratifying pleasure ll alcohol induces in your body. gone is the feeling of fear that emanates off of every inch within your body. your bones don't feel as if it's locking up everytime you feel eyes on you, and your throat doesn't certainly feel constricted with the lack of flow of blood anymore.
god, this is why you've never once regret drinking right after the moment you turned eighteenâ not when it's positive effects outweighs all the negative emotions that rule over your body.
you couldn't even notice a man with shades (seriously, who wears that to party? isn't the club dark enough?) sitting beside your drunken form in the corner of your eyes, raptured in the thin line between focusing on reality and drifting off to dream world. you don't even bat an eye to his muffled giggles and the way he twisted his stool just to admire the view: you.
you're oblivious to the entire commotion happening within the depths of his mind because you couldn't feel any aptitude to danger right nowâ thanks to the effects of the hard liquor overtaking whatever fear you've felt being watched long ago.
or maybe you just felt safe beside the stranger. or, you're merely drunk. you don't know.
fuck, you're so close to passing out.
you don't know where your friends are, where they came running off to but you know you won't be getting out her sooner or later and you definitely don't have a ride home. so your only way back without getting ambushed as a completely vulnerable citizen of gotham, is by a safer, more convenient means of a rideâ but that certainly wouldn't be safe if your friends are as equally drunk, or even more so, as you. but does your hazy mind care? no. not when you flip your head to rest on the other side once the other side became hotter that you notice a conveniently attractive man staring right back at you with an entertained grin.
as if your existence alone makes him happy. as much as your mind keeps blanking out, that mere implication made your heart pang just a teensy bit. of pain, or pleasure, or mere joy, you don't know. but you do know that it triggered some unknown feelings and you don't want to feel.
you want to drink some more, feeling solemn all of a sudden just from staring at him. you're sure the obvious frown on your quivering lips and the heavy, hot sigh
and it doesn't help that his face seems similar. the longer you stare, the more his grin seems to sharpen. confidently? or shyly? you can't seem to gain a clear image of him; what when rainbow lights are blazing out through the holes of the disco ball and your eyes recently just opened to your near journey to traverse through sleep.
all you can make out to be is his jet-black hair, side bangs framing the left side of his face, a faint outline of an eyebrow piercing
you also took note of his spiky jacketâ yet what draws you the most to him are his sunglasses that he chose to wear conspicuously in a damn club of all places.
he's attractive, to say the least, but he triggers a set of emotions deep into the cages of your imprisoned heart that sets itself free. he gives you a sense of nostalgia, of familiarity that you can't pinpoint but feel; like you've seen him before but don't know when. your eyebrows furrow in and your eyes squint at him, unknowing to the judgement you're subjecting him in. your lips wobble, though, because his presence just makes your heart feel something, akin to pain but not quite, and makes your head buzz that you just want to cry as a reaction.
he, the stranger, don't know it, but he makes you all sad, primal emotions overtaking any drunkenness you feel as deep tremors buzzed into the confines of your chest, until all you're doing is staring at him with pouting, downturned lips and sad, puppy eyes; rimming with salty tears.
you don't know why you feel sad all of the sudden, and you can faintly see through blurry, watery vision how his face shifted from entertained to worry, eyebrows raised and eyes wide open at your sudden mood shift.
maybe you or him could've spoken up, you more so, but you're just so emotionally drained and overwhelmed today that you began sobbing silently without breaking eye contact with the man.
despite you wanting to say anything: an introduction, a question opening up as to why he's staring at you, or even a mere phrase telling him to "back off"; the only words that came out from your parched throat, all from trying to reason in your head on what a proper sentence should be, were:
"you're hot," and if you were sober enough, you would've felt sheer embarrassment and shame from eyeing the boy, but you're notâ and because you're not sober, or any bit sane, the next few sentences you spewed out were all coherent, yet wonkily pronounced utterances paired with teary eyes and sniffling nose, as you can't seem to control the feelings of melancholy in your heart and the sudden emotional burst from your ramblings.
"thank you, you too, actuallyâ but are you alright-"
"you're so hot, god, please. i don't know..." you gave him no time to speak as you hiccupped, lips wobbling even more than you can imagine. and you're trying your damn best to rid of the urge to punch at your chest as a coping mechanism through the multitude of emotions eating you up and away. but you never realized you were trying for an absolute stranger, palms fisting into itself as he stares at you worriedly all of a sudden.
"like... you're familiarly attractive, iâ" the next few sentences were incoherent as your words bubbled around you like detergent soap. your fingers found itself into your face as you try to wipe off both tears and nearly dripping snot as you continued rambling drunkly.
"you just! you're hot, for me, i don't know... i'm just, we allâeughh... i don't know, i'm so sad..." and you truly are, for no reason at all other than seeing the man. poor him, must've felt so ashamed that he's the reason you're crying but at the same time... nothing can really stop you from ceasing your tears.
at least, that's what you've convinced yourself to believe in. that you're truly incurable of the ailment of being constantly depressed with nobody to aid you with your troubles. not even your friends, nor past therapists that you've consulted.
you've nothing to comfort you, and that makes you even more solemn than ever.
the simplest of emotions felt, the deeper and complex you take it out to be. sadness, or moreover depression, the horseman of apocalypse that destroys any hope you've tried to kindle with your life.
it makes you all the more burst into a wave of even more tears.
"... okay, okay, wait here for me, alright?" he suddenly stood up, hurriedly, probably unsure, or disgusted by you. you're unsure about what he's saying, too caught up crying that you simply nod to whatever he said and continued on with your episode.
as you're left alone, you allow your tears to dry only cry once more. when he left you, you weren't aware but you just felt even more lonely. at pushing away the only company you had after your friends left you in the dust, you feel depressed and regretful and all emotions related to grief and you just want to drink some more but you don't know if you can take it anymore!
god, it all returns to pain. pain you thought you could bury deep once you took multiple swigs of alcohol.
pain that makes you want to bang your head against the marble of the barâ
and you're so close to doing so, but only stopped when your blurry vision sets itself on the man returning with a handkerchief and a cold glass of ice water. at his kind gesture, you simply teared up even more, pouting when he walked your way and looked at you with a sheeping grin.
when he sat right back up on the stool seated to your right, he hesitated with his hold on the handkerchief near your face. but the moment he gathered up his pride and pressed it against the unnatural blaze of your cheeks, you merely leaned closer to his palms, eyes closing as you can feel the tears cease itself finally at the blind comfort he's unknowingly providing you.
"there, there... be careful, 'kay stranger?"
he mutters, a light chuckle accompanying him. it's only now you can finally focus on the cool churn of his voice and the , with your eyes close and the haze of your thoughts washing away, leaving you breathless in your respiteâ not restrictive, nor lonely, but still short of breath.
this reminds you of the times alfred had to hold you in his arms everytime you threw a tantrum at the manor.
it made you realize that the months, a near year even, after leaving the manor, made you crave physical affection. making you feel like a husk of yourself when not given. you feed off of the scraps of physical lovez to the point that even this man who's wiping away the tears from your cheeks makes your heart beat faster, in a comfortable manner.
sensations. he once told you that if you feel too deeply within, then to ground yourself you must feel beyond interior ranges of emotions.
and that's the technique you've been willing away from your head for so long. because it always requires another person in the room to comfort you, to simply touch you softly, gently like you're porcelain the same way the stranger is pressing damp fabric against your tearstained cheeks and hollowed out eyes.
the pain you've felt was because you're merely touch starved. alone, in a space where everyone has someone, and a no one can't have anyone.
but now that you do have a someone, no matter how dangerous he could've been outside of your impression of him, you feel the pain lessen, the heavy burdens become featherlight at his kind gestures of wiping all the salty tears from your face, the runny snot from your nose with no rush whatsoever.
"feel better now, hon?"
"mhm..." a long, drawled out yawn emits from your mouth, yet you're too comfortable with him to even care, suddenly feeling a wave of drowsiness after your emotional episode.
after he finished wiping your face, and felt it considerably cool down from the damp fabric, he placed it on the bar, one hand on your face keeping you stable. yet his other hand promptly went back to your cheeks.
he chose to do this of his own volitions, even leaning closer as your head finds itself slowly dropping to his clavicle (careful to avoid the spikes from his peculiar designed jacket), looking up at him and staring at his gray eyes.
the man looks down at you as you now realize he's cupping your face. at the implication of your entire ordeal with him, you might've felt flustered sober, but you're just so drunk that any spacial awareness for the proximity between your bodies just disappeared and left you with the need to sleep within the confines of the safety this man left you with.
you don't know it, but yet again the man smiles down at your adorable antics, finding the way you're absolutely trusting of a stranger both stupid, yet endearing. because he's no more stranger, and heaven bless him because he's so glad he's the person who approached you rather than anyone else because you looked so cute, and his crush on you may have lead him to stalk you occasionally just to ensure you're safeâ that doesn't erase the gesture that he did it purely because gotham is too dangerous for your own good. and he's glad he trusted his human side of intuition, rationalizing with himself that today just seems to be the day you'd bump into danger if he's not there.
you're so stunning up close... how come tim never once found interest in someone as admirable as you is a mystery. but you trusting a stranger in your vulnerable state is much more.
and he's grateful he's that stranger.
because he may be a stranger to you, but a familiar one. and you feel safe, a feeling you haven't felt in so long that you simply just melt against him like clear putty; because you're transparent with what you feel right now.
and right now you feel warmth. not the uncomfortable one that blazes through your (now) cool face when you were drunk, nor the burning one whenever you thought of your familyâ but a pleasant one. like sitting near a fireplace as you watch the embers crackle, drinking hot cocoa whilst a quilt covers your body from the cold of the winter. you feel this way at his kindness, at his efforts to help you contain your emotions to a reasonable degree.
"what's your name, kind stranger?" you mutter on his chest (how come your head is laying on it, actually?) hearing the soft thumps of his heart. it's warm, he's warm and every bit of comfortable, as he does his best to move slightly back to remove his jacket and drape it over your body before he could reply to you, chuckling whilst doing so because you looked up at him with your eyes conveying every damn emotion that made you feel soft.
"it's conner, conner kent. call me kon, though. or yours if it's you." he purrs. it took you a minute to register his obvious flirting but what comes after is an absolute flush on your body and you recoiling from his hold as you look back at him, mouth agape. the tips of your ears were warm, and every bit of
an overexaggeration to his flirting, sure. it makes you look less appealing in your eyes, extra sure! but it's been so long since someone last attempted to flirt with you; but most were under the guise of when you were still a wayne and... and not as yourself. you! you who sports so many imperfections thatâ
"haha! is it strange to say that you look so cute whenever you look at me with wide eyes in the short span of time we just met?"
he slides in through your train of thoughts before you could delve even deeper through self-deprecation. and you're glad that he did because... god, he makes you want to shamelessly gloat as a reply. you've never had someone complement your eyes before, actually...
"i'm..." you look back at him after you stared down at your palms, heat overtaking your entire body. yet again it wasn't uncomfortable, and just the right temperature. you stutter your name afterwards, making sure it's your mother's last name that you highlighted implicitly and not bruce's.
he seems to grin even wider when you introduce yourself. that's when his next reply generally warranted you to nearly burst off your seat out of sheer diffidence.
"well," he says your name, tasting every syllable in his pierced tongue. "your name tastes sweet, dove. but i think your face is even sweeter now that you're not crying â not saying that isn't cute too but you're so stunning now that i look closer at you without any barriers. your eyes, especially, they're like some mix doe and siren eyes, or whatever my other friends talk about in social media. point given, you're drop-dead gorgeous in my eyes."
it all comes naturally from him that your brain merely shortcircuited and fried itself comprehending his message, forgetting you were drunk in the first place replacing it with a flush in your heart, the pit of grief and despair replaced with the lighthearted need to banter or reply meekly at his shameless flirting right after he comforted you.
this is the first time you felt something for someone's romantic gestures, instead of that wave of nausea that accompanies you.
he makes you feel... pretty about yourself. in a good way, in a way you don't feel the need to hide your insecurities for once and instead allow his eyes to flitter around your entire face, analyzing your features because... because he simply makes you feel pretty the more he stares at you.
yet all you did was take his hand on your own, a sudden burst of confidence even you couldn't explain, and played with it, as you pouted in reply before thinkingâ using his hand-now-turned-fidget-toy â of a good enough response.
you simply said, coughing before continuing, "i don't take back what i said moment's ago. you're hot too, even if my vision was obstructed by my tears."
"oh, really?" he smiled gently and allowed your hands autonomy to play with his. it's like telepathy, he knows it's automatic that you crave physical affection and attention and he's willing to provide you that solace.
"now that you're not cryingâ you think i'm even more handsome?"
you snort at his question, then took a step back with your thoughts to properly study him. neat, yet messy hair, piercing on the eyebrows and on his tongue (hot), sunglasses and spiky jacket draped upon your shouldersâ goddamnit, of course he's hot! and you made it efficiently clear that he is, with your hands fiddling pattern against his soft, yet calloused hands, by squeezing it.
"yes, you are even more handsome, kon..." brief and concise, just how you like it. even if he gave you an entire essay describing you in his eyes, for you, you prefer actions; and you did so by simply being affectionate with the stranger, now acquaintance you have a slight crush on.
you'd never expected this turn of events, but it was a pleasant one and one you'd never really want to trade with anything else now that you've met kon.
so when he opened his mouth to spew something else, your ears perked up to listen and your mind, albeit slowly sobering up, prepared itself to reply to whatever flirting, conversation topics, and anything random it is that he wishes to talk about to you.
you smiled at him whilst he talked, he reciprocates as always.
yet this time, you weren't afraid to hide just how joyous you feel, for once, having a person interested in you not only physically but with your interests, too, as your conversations kept shifting to things about you.
it made inclined to learn about yourself, too. and that makes you happy, and fuzzy in the insides the more he asks you questions beyond your favorites. like in movies, he didn't simply just ask your favorites and you replied with an answer and moved on, no! you both discussed the emotional depth it impacted you with, why symbolism matters so much, and why in the near future you'd both inevitably meet up, you'll both watch it together.
that makes you feel excited.
you even forgot the main reason why you're here in the first place; to drink. now, though, it seems like you just wanted to talk to kon all night long.
fortunately for you, that's how the rest of your night went. with a pleasant buzz in the background, the sounds of remixes all drowned out in your ears as you favor the chatters of the man beside you, with the tremor of his voice a comfortable volume and his tone laced with freshly made honey.
when your friends finally ran back to the bar where you all collectively agreed to meet up at once everyone's shenanigans were finished, they giggled drunkenly whilst some sober ones whistled at seeing your hand unknowingly massaging his palms like a stresstoy and the jacket draped upon your shoulders.
the moment you returned it to him, he joked about wearing it every second now since it reminds him of you, and how it's his favorite piece of attire now beyond all his other clothing. you merely blushed and ignored the cooing of your friends behind you.
you didn't feel concerned over not seeing him anymore, as he had given you a slip of paper with his number on it in through a tissue with paracetamol pills wrapped around it (like the thoughtful gentleman he made himself out to be when he excused himself a second time to get those items, since you'd left your phone with one of your friends; you swore you felt a blush creep into your cheeks and heating the tip of your ears), you instead felt a pang of longing and furrowed your brows, looking at him as if asking if you'll see him around anytime soon as he reciprocates with a sure grin that makes you feel a wave of feather like affection.
he left shortly after, striding to you as your group recollects all your stuff and whispering a, "text you later, dove. stay safe for me, alright? don't let any other strangers get to you."
you're glad this night would end on a good note, willing away any prior doubts towards spending the night in a completely foreign street and expecting fir criminals and thugs to break in but no! you can't help but admit that your new... interest, conner, made your night a thousand times better.
and his little nickname for you... haha, you're so flustered thinking about texting him tonight. you'd neglect your assignments for now if it meant messenging him right after you get home, safely, for his sake.
when your group all came outside though, that's when things shifted.
time is a construct. it's complicated and structured like that as well. it can either be too fast, or too slow. when your friends had taken their sweet time to spend the night dancing about the dancefloor, when you'd taken the precious time to flirt and talk to kon; that's when you all collectively realized that their damn cars were stolen.
the air suddenly shifted to this thick atmosphere when you all stepped out, one that can be sliced through with a sword, and you sworeâ
god, you swore this night couldn't have been any better with the turn of things, but now. right after you got out the club, it all took a turn for the worse.
this is it.
you're going to die today.
you're going to die, in some dirty ditch, your friends nowhere to be found, with nobody to save you.
nasty bruises already began to form on your skin, one with harsher colors of purple, blue, and yellow on your wrists and other patches of skin; way harsher
the man in front of you was gnarly, but you've no time to judge as he kicks you in the guts.
matted brown hair lay atop his head like a bird's attempt at a near, he has an odor that reeks of sewer rats, piss, and feces, and an unruly beard that houses bits of his leftover.
he holds a weapon whose shape you couldn't make out with your hazy vision, body nearly cramping in on itself once he kicked you again.
straight in the abdomen, with brute strenght accompanied by his worn leather boots decorated with glinting spikes that sparkle under the moonlight's glow.
in the abdomen, spikes.
blood first, then curdling pain next.
no noise rips through your ears, only wringing ever present, but your mouth opens, and you can feel its tender chords crack as a scream erupts from your throat, shrill and resounding from the deepest depths of the cockpit your mouth has to offer you; uncaring for the man in front of who who suddenly covers his ears and grits his teeth, who looks at you like you're mad, yet unlike same way his two other lackeys from behind look at your like you're the creation of carnage itself.
pain shot throughout your body, most especially at the core of the holes that pierced through your clothes and right inside your skin. and as your bulging, teary eyes try to look down with an agape, whimpering mouth, his shoes still connected to your body; you could only hold off so much of that familiar taste of acidic bile paired with that lingering scent of cheap booze.
tears were a byproduct of the misery, as it began to escape from your already puffy eyes. when the man released his legs fron pinning you down, your sobs only worsened as your unpinned, shivering arm try its damned best to cover the already leaking blood.
six holes, the diameter of the more than half of your finger, was what you could make out in your line of sight. the blood that leaked from them looked black, you couldn't find where the gradient of black and red connects, your only certainty in this situation was that you'd bleed to death before help could come to you.
the spikes were as long as a toothpick, a crimson puddle lay dripping on the floor.
your legs were shaking against your will, your eyes frantically search around you yet your pinned once more, his larger body framing against your own, providing no room nor qualms for an escape.
but the only escape you wanted was one from the pain of his pressing against your injury, even more blood spilling out of its confines. your tears only hastened its descent from your shaky eyes.
when your mouth opened for the nth time to wail out, he seethed in a breathe and threatened you, with his breath as vile as his entire being, that smells like every mix of synthetic chemicals from cigarette flavors, all expired, with teeth rotting and sporting yellow and black wallpaper.
gross, so gross. you want to die when the stench hits your nose. you shrivel in yourself, you couldn't breath.
"listen here, little bitch, you quiet down or i kill you. and 'ya either give me everythin' you own in your damn possession, or i'll kick you even more until a thousand little holes will fuckin' make you bleed to death, hear me?"
hearing his statement only made the adrenaline pump even more fight of flight into your heart. but you can't do either, you can't, not when you're still hazy from the fucking alcohol and the self defense tools in your tiny pouch were thrown a few feet away from you.
you've nothing to defend yourself.
oh god, oh shit, fuck.
you want to die, you want to so fucking die than go through the same pain of nearly being abducted or held hostage again.
yet your eyes could only close, your teeth kissing your bottom lips, biting hard to drown out another pained scream. whimpers, god, they're so loud yet you can't help the whimpers and the broken faucet from your eyes. even if you beg your own body to stop, it doesn't listen to the pleas of your mind.
the only thing it can focus on is the pain. recreant, volatile pain.
a moan escapes you, shaky and prolonged. the only other emotion that you could experience after is sorrow.
you didn't expect your pleasant night to end off in such a tragic note, but as your attacker held you by your throat with one hand, a knife pointed against your face, the next that happened was your head slammed roughly against the wall; a dull, beating ache lulling the back of your head after the momentary spark of painâ you're reminded that this is reality, and you're close to losing consciousness quick.
you're going to die.
bloody, a sobbing, dissociating mess, with your thoughts spinning around the same way the stranger and his lackeys laugh â bared yellow teeth, with the smell of ichor prevalent in their clothes, predatory eyes leering at you like you're prey â at your drunken moans of pain.
you're going to die.
"well, you gonna answer me or what, bitch? you wanna die!?"
he shouts you with spit that sprays all over your face, flashing you a grin and by extension flashing you his ugly, bared teeth. some missing were in his gums, others were artificial, most rotten like him.
you're going to die.
alone, in a ditch. bloody, laying in a pool of your own crimson the same way you saw your mother drowns in a puddle of hers.
you'll die like herâ
what an honor.
the more you think about the situation, the more you're led to believe that the only way to solve this was through death alone, with no restrictions, no buts or ifs. you've no fight left in your body, or any weapon to fight. you're drunk, defenseless and if you actually managed to escape, you'd still bleed to death in some unknown alleyway. if you're lucky, a stray police may find you and give you a proper burial. but you remember you're in the living incarnate of hell in america, you'll never have a proper death.
this was night in gotham. your death alone only adds to the already astounding high percentages of all the other lives lost to the same twisted fate. you were no different. and to die early than to suffer from torture is better.
i mean, who would give a shit if you die tonight, right? your familyâ wrong! alfred would panic at your disappearance, but he'll forget about you like he did others, you're sure of it. that's why he still chose to fucking serve the wayne's instead of fully taking your side. if he had to choose between saving you or the people he swore his loyalty onto, he wouldn't hesitate. you're sure. even if the thoughts made the doom in your heart heavier. even if you know your story would never be covered nor acknowledged, you still year
but life is unfair, everything is. that's why you're here now, in a dark fucking alleyway with men who'll more than take advantage of your dying body and leave your corpse in the dump after. life is unfair, yet it's even more cruel in gotham. you should've expected this, should've known that a turn of events could be possible. you'll feel regret in the afterlife, only for a life that could've been well-lived, but never for the choice of living through the torture you call being a wayne.
so you came to the conclusion; confident for once after living for thirteen and a half years walking on eggshells around a manor.
this is not as bad as their neglect.
you smile in response to the guy, genuine and filled with grace as your heart that once pounds against your chest now slows down to a calm pace, finally at peace. with no other intention than to rattle him even more, to the point of choosing you to kill with his own hands as brutally as he likesâ so you finally take a well deserved rest from life.
you gather saliva at the center of your tongue, ignore the taste of blood that swirls, nor the soreness of your throat and the crimson dripping down your nose.
when he looks down at you, disoriented at what you're doing, you spit at him, all the beating in your heart hastened, yet slowed down as quickly as you heave in a final breath.
... you're finally going to die.
"FUCKING HELL, YOU DAMN CUNTâ!"
you close your eyes, bracing yourself for the knife that would hopefully stab you in the face, or the chest, and think of your last thoughts. you thank alfred for caring for you for those thirteen years, you hope you win your mother's graces in the afterlife even if she discovered your deliberate choices for killing yourself in the spur of a moment, and you wish your old family a happy life living without you, even if they already did so for so long.
all you needed was seconds to conclude your prayers.
but they weren't answered as you wanted them to be, not when you open your wide eyes to what was supposed to be a glint of silver piercing through the middle of your face was replaced by a bullet, quick and precise, shooting through his cranium without mercy, body immediately laying limp within those seconds.
the other two behind him were good as dead, too, your savior not wasting any moment to end their lives then and there.
and as you stumbled from the grip released from your body, your torso nearly crumpling in on itself, a flash of familiar, metallic red enters your vision when you'd look up from your savior who's huge form now meticulously acts as your shield from the brutal carnage that lays upon your line of sight and a pillar of protection trying to help you stand from the pain that shot through your lower abdomen.
but you don't want to stand, you want to drop dead right now. you don't want this, you didn't want this to happen.
instead of gratitude, dread fills your lungs with water and your fingers were left to tremor.
he looks down at you, you couldn't make out his expression, but you could feel the anger coursing through his body, the same as the day you first met him when he was still newly rebirthed, like it's telling you of his unadulterated rage at witnessing the scene before him. his body shakes, heavily, and his grip on your hands tighten, a mechanical groan drawling deep from his automated voice banks that changes his voice.
yet all you feel was fear overtaking your entire body prior to the comfort at the prospect of death.
you'd rather die than this.
even you couldn't believe the whimper of his name from your wobbling lips, as your body, out of instinct despite the pain, tried to push itself against the wall, away from him.
he only moves to hold your waste protectively, like a... brother suffocating his younger sibling with blankets when they complain it's cold. overbearing, disgustingly affectionate; you don't want it.
you feel cold.
this day could've been any worseâ and it took a turn to the all worse scenarios you could imagine.
"jason...?"
"angel..."
a single familiar name was spoken, yet a new nickname was introduced. angel: the same way jason swore what you looked like when he sped through his motorcycle after hearing a shriek from all across the streets, finding you, bleeding and beaten to a pulp, with your attacker almost stabbing you.
of course, who wouldn't hesitate pulling a gun against someone trying to kill your precious? jason doesn't even need to choose.
and whether he did it in the name of justice and respect to his moral code, or because finding someone with a familiar face, sharing the same hopeless, yet death-accepting expression as he did back when he diedâ it all doesn't matter in the heat of the moment now.
what matters is that his angel is hurt and the madness in him festers the longer you bleed out in his arms, defiant and fearful all the same.
reblogs and interactions are encouraged and appreciated.
PLEASE READ: 11,000+ words. AND I LITERALLY HATE THIS CHAPTER (new least favorite fr) đ this decision is so impulsive i gonna regret it soon. chapter 5 will be released after a few days and i promise it has more action than this I SWEAR. first parts are always boring. anyways, there're so many song references in this chapter and for the next chapter. if any of you could guess what they are, i'll be rewarding all of you with something special. otherwise, please leave comments for this chapter! what motivated me to write was reading everybody's comments and inputs, about the love they have for this series as much as i do. interactions, asks, comments, they're all important and dear to me and i heavily appreciate it. so more interaction = more content. after all, i'd rather a post with little likes but with no interaction than a post with no interaction but all likes.
otherwise, i can't add anymore to my taglist so taglist requests are closed!
taglist: @lilyalone, @secretomelettetroops, @earlqurl, @simpingfor-wakasa, @amber-content, @ruiroku , @okaybutfullhomo , @trasshy-artist , @obsessedwithromance, @jjsmeowthie, @fairy-lenaa , @ilovvmyhusband , @6uuyuuhgy, @plsfckmedxddy, @lavender-moony , @sweetheart-era, @chemicalsandghosts , @darling006 , @starringyau , @samanthahanes, @rosecentury , @jaythes1mp , @pi1nkl0ver , @i-thirsty-boy, @sharks-are-cool-l, @silverklaus, @traumaramacenter , @maddimoon , @anxrq, @thedarknesslord , @h0rr0r-10ver-69 , @lazy-idate , @cupids-pretty-boy , @alishii, @mel-star636 , @sitepathos , @freakyotaku059-blog , @dirtydiavolo, @sunbleachedantlers, @24hrsoflanii, @ceramic-raven , @une-lueur-dans-la-nuit , @tdickensstuff4 , @thickerthanthieves , @arlandvery , @distressed-lezbo, @bunbunboysworld , @bellethesleepypotato, @nebuluma, @alliwantisadonut, @alishii, @kusakiguzen, @sirenetheblogger, @emmbny, @ryukyuin, @solkara, @starsdotalk, @nightstarblue, @huhuhhuhh, @shadowpup163, @sunshine-skz, @24hrsoflanii, @bazellawrites, @pato-spoiler-27, @harumy07cat, @rains-mae, @funnybunnyxxx, @littlelilithspost, @howisgroguthiscute, @yuyuzi-ling, @tullipam, @coldcrusadehideout, @princessloveweird, @hybridcon
#đ·... yael's works#series: again & again#yandere dc#yandere dc comics#yandere batfam#yandere batman#yandere dick grayson#yandere dick grayson x reader#yandere jason todd#yandere jason todd x reader#male yandere#platonic yandere#soft yandere#yandere bruce wayne#yandere alfred pennyworth#yandere#yandere x reader#yandere x you#yandere x y/n#yandere x gn reader#yandere x male reader#yandere x darling#yandere x female reader#yandere tim drake#yandere damian wayne x reader#yandere damian x reader#yandere cassandra cain#yandere stephanie brown#yandere duke thomas#yandere barbara gordon
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
Lightning - Tyler Owens (smut)
I mean, we all knew this would happen. I havenât seen the movie yet, but I am DESPERATE for him. And as somebody who actually has something to do with studying tornadoes, I had to write this. I am obsessed with this fic, but I doubt this will get much attention, so please actually reblog it if you enjoyed reading it! Enjoy my loves. xxx
Summary: Tyler and the reader are chasing tornadoes together, but when they have to step back and find shelter, things quickly change between them.
Warnings: 18+, smut, piv, handjob, kinda enemies to lovers, teasing and all that fun stuff
Pairing: Tyler Owens x fem!reader (3k words)
Wind was blowing in her face, letting her strands dance in the air while her eyes flickered between her laptop screen and the dark sky. She was surrounded by her team, trying to ignore their shouts as they decided which direction to head in. (Y/n) was torn between too many options, not liking the way this afternoon was playing out.Â
It was do or die, miss or hit one of the biggest tornadoes they had come across in a while. And yet the second cell that was currently forming gave off a somewhat more promising chance of catching enough data this time around.Â
âWhich way will it be, lightning?â Her breath hitched in her chest as he mumbled the words, front pressed against her back. The hairs on her arms began to rise, fully focused on his closeness, allowing her to pick up on the scent of his familiar cologne, on the way his breath fanned over the back of her neck as if he was about to kiss that very spot.
âAm I dreaming? Is Tyler Owens asking for my opinion?â She slowly turned towards the handsome man. Her eyes instantly found his piercing ones, getting lost in their intense gaze while he shot her one of his signature smirks. Fuck, if he werenât such an asshole most of the time, she would easily give in to the pull she felt, allowing him to tug her towards his bed without having to fear about the aftermath. But if there was one thing (y/n) was sure of, it was that Tyler Owens was all about playing games, toying with a woman until he eventually grew bored. He was a personification of a thunderstorm, fast moving and never ready to settle.
âDonât let it get to your head, pretty.â She clicked her tongue with a displeased expression tugging on her features. There was no time left to study him, to curse whoever had created him for making him look this handsome. They had to stay focused, at least until she got the data she needed for her project.Â
âAlright, weâre heading east.â (Y/n) closed her laptop before reaching for her bagâthe bag that was snatched from her grasp before she could protest. Tyler had slung it over his shoulder while tilting his head towards his truck, silently asking her to ride with him.Â
On any other occasion she would have cursed him, would have told him to fuck off. But today, while being heavily understaffed, she needed any help she could get. And knowing that Tyler drove like the devil himself, she knew she had the best chance of arriving just in time with him by her side.Â
His smirk grew wider the second she gave in, begrudgingly following Tyler while her eyes found the confused ones of her teammates. She only rolled her eyes at them, raising her shoulders and dropping them again as if she was wordlessly telling them that she was just as confused as they were, not seeing through Tylerâs game just yet.Â
Silence filled the truck, only a few commands left (y/n) whenever they needed to make a turn, chasing down the roads to catch up with the growing cell. All while the others followed behind them, too slow to catch up with Tylerâs truck. Her heart was pounding in her chest, riled up by the anticipation of chasing another storm â no matter how many times she had done this before, (y/n) would never get used to the thrill, the moments leading up to seeing yet another beautiful though terrifying tornado.Â
âYou alright, pretty?â Sheâd never get used to the way Tyler called her, dripping with that drawl she loved more than sheâd ever admit. (Y/n) didnât look at him, fully focused on her laptop to monitor the path their tornado took. No word left her pressed together lips, trying to drown out the feeling of his concerned eyes flickering towards her every few seconds.Â
â(Y/n)?â The use of her name ripped (y/n) out of her trance, letting her wide pupils find his. She only nodded at Tyler, knowing she couldnât waste any time on the crush she could never speak of, preferring to take her secret to the grave rather than feeding his egoâonly to end up with a broken heart in the process.Â
âGuys, can you hear me?â She held the radio close, speaking to the others while refocusing on the map. All they could hear was rustling, unable to pick up on the reply that was spoken on the other end. Curses clawed through (y/n), she tried to reach their teams again, while swallowing the sinking feeling growing in the pit of her stomach. No longer could she see them in the rearview mirror, telling her that they hadnât made it down the narrow path Tyler had taken.
The road ahead was muddy, forcing the truck to slither along while Tyler tried to avoid holes and ditches. With one hand clutching the door, (y/n) tried to hold still, not daring to bump into Tyler whose angry cusses filled the truck. Both had their eyes focused ahead, knowing that this had been the wrong choice, the wrong tornado to chase. They were heading straight towards their death if they kept going that way, knowing that without their team by their side, they wouldnât be able to collect enough data anyway.Â
âI hate being the one to say it, but we gotta find shelter, lightning.â Tylerâs annoyed groans left her nodding, giving him the green light to take a sharp left to turn towards the town close by. With the slimmest chance to find proper shelter, Tyler kept speeding along, seemingly having a spot in mind. (Y/n) was angry, at herself, at the road conditions, knowing that this situation should have played out much differently. And all she could do was trust the man she had always tried to hate.
âCome, follow me.â The truck was forced to a sudden halt. (Y/n) followed Tyler outside, holding onto her things while he reached for her free hand to pull her along. He guided her towards what appeared to be a barn, a building she paid no attention to as she studied the tornado, getting lost in its beauty for a second. âThey built an underground shelter here a few years back, if weâre lucky nobody else had the time to find it.â
Tyler pushed her into the unlocked barn, letting the doors slide close again before he led her down some stairs. She didnât dare speak, torn between too many emotions. All (y/n) could do was let go of a sigh while being ushered into the empty, dark shelter. It took her a while to adjust to the darkness, letting her hands move along the metallic wall until she found what appeared to be a light switch. She gave it a try, though without any luck, letting herself drop to the ground while Tyler stayed glued to his spot.Â
If both hadnât been too deep in thought, they would have realised that this was the first time they were sheltering together, completely alone without any nosy eyes watching them or listening to their talks.Â
âWe should have gone west, Iâm sorry.â Her whispers filled the small shelter, luring Tyler closer who plopped down next to her. He fumbled with his phone to turn on the fleshlight, letting it rest on the ground to alight their surroundings. A few boxes were placed against the wall, filled with water and some snacks they hopefully wouldnât have to use, praying that theyâd get out of here fast enough to chase their luck once again.Â
âThereâs always time for another try, pretty.â Tyler reached for her hand to squeeze it before he could stop himself, forcing her eyes to focus on the spot where she now felt a buzzing sensation. She let her head roll towards Tyler, studying the white hat he took off with his free hand, placing it down on the ground, only to comb through his hair.Â
âDonât think Iâve ever seen you without that thing on.â (Y/n)âs whispers left him chuckling, a sound that momentarily managed to drown out the roar of the tornado. The howling was an almost comforting sound to them, after years of chasing them, well aware of every little detail.Â
âWell, youâre one of the few who gets the honour, appreciate it.â She rolled her eyes at him before ripping her gaze off of him. Heat flushed through her at his teasing, a heat that only grew more biting as she realised that they were still holding hands. Her tongue moved along her dry lips, trying to find the right words to break their silence, silently hoping that she could cherish every single second of their time together. As much as she had once sworn to hate him while burying her crush deep inside of herself, she had lost all strength to fight against it, at least for now.
âWhy have we never done this before?â Tyler seemed to feel the same longing, drawing her focus back towards him with his question. His eyes had an even more piercing touch to them now, having an invisible tight grasp on her soul she didnât want to escape from.Â
âBecause youâre an asshole most of the time and I canât stand being around you for long.â (Y/n)âs sharp reply left him laughing, a loud sound that had an addicting effect on her, leaving her chuckling while shaking her head at the man.Â
âYou wound me, lightning. Here I was hoping youâd finally let me take you out on a date, once this dayâs over.â No longer did she laugh, the sound was stuck in her throat all too suddenly.
Did he truly mean it? Was he planning on asking her out? Or was Tyler playing yet another game with her?Â
âDonât fuck with me, Owens.â His hand darted out to grasp her chin, forcing her to keep her focus on him before she could even try to turn away from him. For just a second, she watched his gaze flicker between her eyes and her slightly parted lips. Once again her heart was back to racing, no longer focused on the howling wind, the sounds of things crashing outside, but fully and solemnly focused on Tyler.Â
âAre you scared of this thing between us?â Once again, his question managed to rob her of the air filling her lungs, not expecting him to be this direct with her. A part of (y/n) begged her to cuss him out, to make fun of the question, to escape the avalanche that was about to roll upon them, but the bigger - more desperate - part of her, managed to gain the upper hand, leading her straight towards danger.
âWell, even though you enjoy riding your fears, I prefer to face âem. Iâm not scared, not of this, whatever this is. But Iâm fucking terrified of you toying with me and dropping me the second Iâm no longer interesting enough.â He let go of her, only to pull her into his lap, making her straddle his stretched out legs. They held eye contact, wordlessly daring one another to move first, to give in to the pull that was as strong as an F5 theyâd happily chase on any other day.Â
âIâd be fucking stupid to mess it up with you.â She felt his breath on her lips, ghosting over her soft skin like he was giving her one last chance to pull away. A chance she wouldnât take, letting it pass while finding his lips for a soft kiss that escalated within seconds. With his hand pressed to the back of her head and his other placed on her waist, Tyler held her to him while deepening the kiss.
Their tongues fought for victory, knowing that neither of them would back down from a fight against the other, urged on by their need to gain the upper hand. Soft groans and moans left them while their bodies searched one anotherâs closeness, knowing that this was something they wouldnât tell others about, preferring to keep this as their secret.Â
Her hands roamed his clothed chest, feeling his muscles beneath her wandering fingers while finding her way to his belt. She toyed with the buckle for a moment while her lips were still glued to his, knowing theyâd have to part any moment now to inhale some much needed breaths of air.Â
âYou sure you want to do this in here, lightning?â His chuckles left her grinning, while holding onto the question she had wanted to ask for a while now.Â
âWhy lightning?â A kiss was shared between them, much softer than the one before. Her hand was still toying with his belt, slowly undoing the buckle to wordlessly tell him she wanted this much as he did, even though they knew that it was stupid and selfish of them to hide out here while their teams were undoubtedly worrying about them.Â
âWell, the first time I saw you, you struck me like lightning, brightening my darkest day.â The explanation was cheesy, and yet it still drew heat up her neck. She could only swallow, smile at him and refocus on her hands. Tyler let her move, freeing his hardening cock while his impatient hands tugged on the buttons of her blouse, letting it pop open to expose her bra-clad chest.Â
âFuck, youâre a dream.â Her eyes flickered up to his while she spat into her palm, using her saliva to lube him up. Tyler couldnât stop his moans from clawing through him, fully focused on the way he perfectly fit into her hand, pressed against the soft skin he wanted to feel against every inch of his body. His head rolled back against the wall, eyes closed and lips parted â offering a sight that made her walls clench around nothing, proud for being the one to make him feel like that.Â
Her hand added more speed to its movements, squeezing him with just enough pressure to draw another raspy moan from Tyler. He allowed himself to relish in her touch for another moment before he gently though urgently grasped her wrist to stop her from moving.Â
âWill you ride me, lightning?â His accent grew thicker with every syllable, leaving her shuddering while only a soft chuckle managed to leave her. She rose to her feet to shuffle out of her jeans, keeping her eyes focused on Tyler who marvelled at her as if she was the strongest tornado he had ever been fortunate enough to see, fully mesmerised by everything about her. She kept her panties on while finding her way back to his lap, knowing that they needed to hit the road soon, not giving them a chance to do this properly.Â
âWait, here.â He reached for his back pocket to pull a condom out of his wallet, letting her rip it open to roll it down his aching cock. Both their hearts were beating in sync, knowing that they were finally about to do something they had been desperate for ever since running into one another for the first time. No matter how much anger and hatred had once grown between them, it was now turning them from opponents to loversâor whatever it was both were trying to adjust to.Â
Tyler held onto her as she sank down on him, letting her forehead fall against his shoulder for a second. No words were spoken while they had to adjust, overwhelmed by the new sensation and the whirlwind of emotions buzzing through them like a storm hitting them both. With her hands holding onto him, clinging to the fabric of the shirt he wore, she began to move, fucking herself on his twitching cock with such a passion, Tyler feared he may never want to get out of this shelter again.Â
âTyler,â his name left her, a breathy whisper he almost missed, too far gone to focus on anything but their closeness. He palmed her ass, letting his fingertips dig into her skin to leave marks that would remind her of this very moment for days to come. His hips met hers, jerking upwards to make his cock disappear inside of her even deeper, drawing desperate moans from them which dripped with a need for more.Â
âAttagirl, look at you, fucking yourself on my cock like you were born for this.â She moaned at his words, knowing that her thighs would start aching soon enough, begging for a new position to give herself the needed push to fall over the edge. âWhat? Youâre already getting tired? I should have fucked you in my truck, make you scream my name while the worldâs ending around us.âÂ
He pushed her off of him without a warning, leaving her dazed and confused for a second while watching him rise to his feet. With a hand stretched out for (y/n) to take, he pulled her up towards himâonly to pick her up and press her against the wall. His cock was pushed back into her, stretching her walls while he fucked her with a fast pace that made both of them see stars.Â
(Y/n) clawed at his neck, needing to hold onto him while he fucked her closer and closer to the edge. A cocky grin widened on his lips as he felt her walls tightening their grip on his cock. She was close, would let go soon with his name burning on the tip of her tongue, a perfect reminder that she was his from today on, glued to the man who she had once sworn to hate.Â
âScream my name, lightning, show them what a real thunderstorm sounds like.â If he werenât buried deep inside of her, she would have rolled her eyes at him. But (y/n) was too far gone to care about his cheesy teasing, solemnly focused on her arising high and the name rolling off her tongue like a prayer.
And then she came, pushed into an orgasm so strong, (y/n) feared sheâd never experience something like this again. It buzzed through every part of her body, stealing her breath as if she was drowning, forcing her heart to skip beats as if she was chased by someone or rather something. Tyler kept fucking her against the wall, urged on by her moans, the sounds heâd never forget again.Â
Pants kept leaving him while chasing his own high, letting his skin meet hers with every ferocious thrust. And with one last âFuckâ Tyler came, relieving himself into the condom as his smirk returned to his lips. Both were heavily breathing, clinging to the other while coming down from their highs.
âI donât know if I can walk back to the truck.â Carefully, he placed (y/n) back down on her feet, shaking his head at her with a soft smile thrown her way. Tyler pressed another kiss to her slightly swollen lips before both redressed, knowing that they had to get out of here and back to their team as fast as possible.Â
âYou know Iâll gladly carry you, lightning. I always will, if you let me.â
#Tyler Owens smut#Tyler Owens x reader#tyler owens Imagine#twisters#glen powell#glen Powell imagine#Glen Powell smut
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
recent jungkook fanfics that you should read for your own sanity.
(a recommendation for all the girlies who miss him like crazy!)
one rule by @/jasminefanfics on youtube
â dark romance, mean and morally ambiguous jungkook, hostage au, enemies to lovers, smut, love triangle (but itâs just a deranged schizophrenic being the âbone in a kebabâ for the gorgeous couple)
â this is ART. this is true unleashed YEARNING. dark ROMANCE done right, literally the perfect read for winter! this is my absolute fav read of this year đ«Š
bonded by @borathae
â werewolves au, forced marriage au, childhood besties to lovers, angst, romance, smut.
â will this queen ever stop producing art after art? sheâs not capable of doing that, god this was such a good read, Iâm still not over this, THIS IS MY SHEYLA FR! (iyykyk) theyâre everything to me gawd đ„ș
mon révé by @sweetcarrotsandroses97
â archdeacon jungkook, forbidden love, age gap, romani character reader, dark romance.
â Iâve never read something so beautifully, perfectly executed, every scene she wrote is plastered into my brain, the amount of times i think about this fic is not normal, Iâm desperately awaiting the new chapters đâđŒ
the love prognosis by @awrkive
â friends to lovers (the og), medical au, unrequited love, roommates trope.
â nobody gets them like I do fr! my precious ship! đ„șđ»đ€ČđŒ i loved how down bad he was for her from the beginning, we love a man who worships the ground his woman walks on LIKE AHHHH the author executed the one sided pining from jungkook so well! THE ANGST IS DELICIOUS IN THIS.
christmas & chill series by @girlygguk & @lovieku
â special xmas edition, jungkook and reader.
â the way Iâm about to eat this up. u guys arenât ready for the obnoxious amount of times Iâm gonna be crying ab this whole series on my blog, oh lord have mercy on me, this is so brilliant oh how i wanna kiss their hands for this, SUCH DIVAS BOTH OF THEM đ«Š
infrunami by @kooktrash
â friends to lovers, mutual pinning, smut, angst.
â boom shakalaka yes gawd! after I completed reading this fic, i took a moment to myself, clapped and took a lap around my bedroom, then I also did a 7 min standing ovation, this deserves more hype ngl.
burning hour by @jungqkook
â established relationship, smut, exhibitionism.
â the amount of times iâve re read this is embarrassing but it is that LEVEL of good, oh god when is it my turn to experience something like this?
catch twenty-two by @miraclemaven on wattpad
â forbidden romance, age gap, smut, older reader & younger jungkook, angst.
â im so hooked into this story, even though i havenât started reading properly, this is a promising one, with really good writing.
chained up by @jikookie17
â obsessed addicted jungkook (my jam), smut, angst, fluff.
â reading this made me feel like im watching a melodramatic story of two idiots who literally canât live without each other, its a cute lighthearted read, 100% recommend!
THE END OF TODAYâS LIST.
â â â â â â â â â â â â
â â hope the girlies like it â. đ Ë
#bangtan#bts jungkook#jungkook#jeon jungkook#jungkook x reader#jungkook jeon#jungkook fanfic#bts fic#bts jk#jungkook x oc#jungkook fluff#jungkook smut#jeon jungkook smut#jeon jungkook x reader#jungkook x you#jungkook angst#jungkook scenarios#jungkook recent#yandere jungkook#jeongguk#bts army#bts
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
NEED TO KNOW â j.jk
â
Pairing: jeon jungkook + f!reader
â
genre: smut
â
: older!jk, dads bestfriend!jk , oral (giving and receiving ) , unprotected sex , reader has a crush on jk, bachelor!jk, big dick jk, size kink kinda, hair pulling, gagging, slapping, pervert jk , dry humping , anal play , degradation, name calling, nicknames - lmk if i missed any!
â
W/C: 4,395
A/N: remember that time I mentioned a jk fic that i was writing? This is that fic. Literally put this on hold for 2 months and finished writing it last night đ anyways enjoy!!
.02 <3
ââïœĄđŠč°â§â
MDNI. Please refrain from reading if the topics make you uncomfortable. ââïœĄđŠč°â§â
âBut i dont wannnnaaaaa goooooo!..â you whined as you declined your dadâs offer to go to his big company party. âSweetheart this is a huge deal for me âŠâ your dad countered. â⊠more over, mr.jeon is going to be there ..!â Your ears perked up at the mention of Mr. Jeon. The tall, tatted bachelor with his piercings and built body, who has been your dadâs best friend since his college days.
Since you were a teenager, you have had the biggest crush on him. He was perfect in every way. He was older. More wiser. Handsome. Just your type. The initial infatuation was small, but as you grew into your adult years, it grew stronger.
You were starting to dream about him. Not even the usual kind. Wet dreams.
He grew older like fine wine. Body covered in beautiful art. Built like an actual Greek god.
Surprisingly, he was not yet married, even though he was well off in his late 40s. He used to say 'no woman has ever caught my attention' when someone mentioned him still being single at his ageâfrom what you've heard.
Your dad and him, being business partners, frequently bring him to your home. Always hanging out at the bar or in your dadâs study. You capitalized on these small visits and began attempting to attract his attention. Whenever he came over, you started hanging out at the bar. Offering to make him special drinks. Talking about his interests , which you found out through intense stalking just to impress him. wearing revealing clothes, buying him his favorite food and snacks whenever you visit his office to pick up something for your father. You got very close to him. Your obsession with him became stronger because he seemed so nonchalant about your little tactics. The worst thing you have ever done was hire someone to break off one of his relationships. Only you were meant for him. No one else.
Hearing your father say that he would be there was another opportunity to impress him. You shot up. âWHY DIDNâT YOU SAY THIS BEFORE???â You say as you rummage into your closet for the perfect dress. Your father believed that your attraction to Jungkook was innocent and similar to that of a child. You had always said you hated the smell of alcohol, so he thought it was strange for you to start hanging out at the bar. Despite noticing many changes, he dismissed them as 'innocence', so he expected you to join him if he mentioned Jungkook. He left your room with a satisfied smile on his lips. You finally found the dress. A satin spaghetti strap dress in black, his favorite color, with a dangerously low open back. The dress was revealing when you put it on; the side of your boob was peeking out, but it hugged your curves perfectly. As the time got closer, you finished up spraying on your most expensive perfume, taking a final look at yourself before leaving.
The party was classy. A huge venue with what appeared to be millions of waiters with champagne. Upon entering the venue with your family, your eyes immediately searched for Jungkook. It wasn't long before you spotted him in the middle of a small group. He seemed to notice your family and hurried towards all of you without delay. As he got closer, your heart was beating fast. âHey hey! My man!â He said taking your dad into a tight hug. âYou could have come a bit more later!â He said sarcastically, taking a jab at your dadâs late-coming habit. âDon't blame me! This one took too long!â Your dad exclaimed, hugging you by your side. Jungkookâs eyes landed on you. He stared you down. Taking in each and every curve, his eyes eventually landed on your chest before he looked at your face and smiled. âSo glad you came! You look gorgeous tonight.â He said, taking in your hand and kissing the back of your palm slowly, in a sensual way, while deeply staring into your eyes. He pulled away and rubbed the skin with his thumb before giving you a smirk. You felt your insides melt and your brain malfunction at his simple gesture. You were frozen in place and didnât know what to do. You shyly backed away and looked down , trying to hide your wide smile with your bangs, which Jungkook took notes on.
Time flew by as you watched Jungkook speak in front of the huge crowd with charisma and confidence. One of his best traits. He always caught everyoneâs attention with his choice of words and tone. It was embarrassing for you to admit that, but it turned you on. Your legs were crossed, rubbing your thighs together from time to time, and no one seemed to notice, except for Jungkook, of course. He eyed you every time you made a small movement.
All the speeches and boring talks concluded, which made you run out onto the balcony for some fresh air. You stared off into the distance, thinking about what Jungkook had done to you earlier. Was it platonic? Was he just being nice? Does he have feeli- âdid all those old men bore you out?â Jungkook was behind you. His voice husky. His lip and eyebrow piercing, shining under the moonlight. You were caught off guard and turned around to see âyour man', âmr.jeon! Ugh you scared me!â You said dramatically, placing a hand on your chest. He gets closer with a charming smile on his face and hands in his pockets. âMy apologies. I didn't mean to scare you!â He let out a soft chuckle. âHow is your night going?â He asked you. âHm? Oh good i guess, itâs kinda boring, but i would do anything for my father..â He chuckled and gave you a side eye. âFor your father? Really?â it seemed like he knew the real reason why you were here in the first place. âWdym really? I love my dad!â You said in a playful, offended tone. Â He chuckled once again. âFine fine! I know how much you adore him.â You sighed softly and smiled.
âI like that dress on you. It suits you a lot.â  He said while eyeing you. You blushed at his compliment, looking down and fiddling with your acrylic nails. âThank you..â you mumbled under your breath. You feel him getting closer to you. âSorry? I didnât hear you,  sweetheart.â His hands were on your hips, squeezing them softly. You froze in place. Heart beating faster. Your legs threatening to fall. His hands creeped towards your ass. Groping it softly, not wanting to seem too pushy. âMr.jeonâŠ-â you let out a shaky whimper at his touch. âItâs jungkook for you, doll.â He said leaning in closer to your ears. He took a huge sniff of your neck and hair. âThierry mugler alien eau de parfum? You have good taste.â He said while softly chuckling in your ears before pulling away. He lifted your chin so you can look at him. Your eyebrows were slightly furrowed as you stared into his intoxicating eyes. âWhat did you want to say earlier?â You gulped before speaking up. âThank you⊠jungkook.â He smiled at you before placing a kiss on your forehead. His hands went under your ears, caressing the soft skin gently. Your eyes widened, and you just stood there. âIâll see you around okay?â He said smiling before he left. You were standing put, like a statue, your limbs refusing to move.Â
A few days went by, and you were still processing whatever happened with jungkook that night. His kiss. The way his hands caressed your body. His little nicknames. It was just too much to process. You didnât see or hear much from jungkook since that day. There were small interactions, but he seemed to ignore you each time. You were starting to get worried. What happened? What did you do wrong? Did you fuck up? Does he hate you?. You never stopped overthinking.
One morning, you heard the familiar voice of Jungkook from the kitchen, laughing and giggling with your father. You quickly put on your clothes and dolled up, still hoping to impress him, before you went downstairs. âAh! Sheâs finally awake! We were just talking about you!â Your father exclaimed. You observed jungkook as he sat on the kitchen island and ate what appeared to be lucky charms. His favorite cereal. He glanced at you briefly before turning away. You felt your heart shatter. After all that he did? Is this the way he treats you? . You walked past him and got yourself a glass of orange juice. âDid you sleepwell princess?â Your father inquired. Jungkook was still not looking at you. His gaze was fixed on the newspaper in front of him. âYeah yeah i did.â You said putting on a fake smile. âOh!â Your father exclaimed as he heard his phone ring. âExcuse me.â He said before rushing out of the kitchen.
You glared at jungkook and gulped down your orange juice before dropping the glass onto the table. Jungkook noticed your action, which made him put his newspaper aside and walk towards you. âWhatâs wrong?â He inquired, leaning onto the island. âHmph!â You huffed, turning around. He let out a low chuckle, shaking his head. âCome onnn! Tell me.â He said while hugging your waist from the back. You let out a heavy sigh before turning back around. âWhat did I do wrong? Why do you keep doing this to me?â You asked. âDoing what?â âAre you seriously going to act like you donât know?â You said folding your arms. Jungkook had a confused look on his face. âYou are ignoring me damn it!â âOhhhhh! About that! I just didnât have anything to say.â He said shrugging. You rolled your eyes at him. âAdmit it, Jungkook, you just want to play with my feelings. You donât care about me. You never did.â You let it all out. It was weird for you to act like this, but you couldnât help yourself. Jungkooks eyes darkened, and he stared at you. You gulp. Â âYou think I donât care about you? Me? Not caring about you? You think i come to your house almost every other day for your father?â He said while pushing you down onto the island. He turned you around and hugged you close to his body; you could feel his clothed hard dick on your pussy. You shudder when he slowly grinds his hips into your behind. âYa feel that doll? Thats how you got me everyday..â he said whispering into your ears. His free hand found your right tit before he gave it a squeeze. Tugging the thin white fabric of your crop top down to expose your hardened nipple. You hear him darkly chuckle in your ear before giving the sensitive bud a squeeze. His hips never seemed to stop as he continued dry-humping you. You felt yourself involuntarily lowering yourself on the island, pushing your ass back into him for more stimulation. He immediately pulls away, leaving you weak and clenching around absolutely nothing. You whined, turning around to face him with pleading eyes. âWhat?â He scoffed at how desperate you were. He got closer and fixed your shirt. He didnât say anything and just rubbed your shoulders down before walking away.Â
A while later, you were napping in your bedroom. It was not uncommon for you to take naps in between the day since you were basically unemployed and didnât have much to do, and you also needed one after what happened with jungkook.
All the blinds were shut, leaving the room completely dark. It was silent; the only sound that was heard was the faint noise of the air conditioner. You were in deep sleep and didnât notice or hear Jungkook entering your room. You felt the bed sink next to you before you felt a cold hand on your hip. His hands, kneading the soft flesh of your ass before it grazed around your desperate cunt. You whine when you feel his fingers touch and draw circles on your sensitive part. âShh..â he shushed you before pressing onto your pussy. He chuckles at how quickly you got wet. Your mouth was agape, soft grunts escaping every second. He slowly pushed you onto your stomach, climbing on top of you before pulling your pink panties to the side.
It was dark, and he couldnât see much, but he could feel how soaked you were. He spread your cheeks and lowered his mouth down onto your cunt, sucking on it. Your eyes shot open, heavy breathing as you turned around to see the man of your dreams eat you out from behind. âJu-jungkook..?â He shut you up by lapping his tongue over your dripping cunt. You let out a loud moan, your head falling sideways, already drooling even though he barely started. He lifted your ass up using his strong hands, making you arch your back. He dropped his head lower and started sucking on your clit, his big nose pressing into your soaking pussy. You grabbed a handful of his hair from behind and pushed him closer. He hummed into your pussy, making you gasp for air. Loud slurping and squelching sounds, along with his groans and your moans, echoed throughout the room. You were seeing stars. The way his mouth ate you out and the feeling of his cold lip ring on your pussy were beyond comprehensible. Your heart started beating faster as you felt your body warm up, and a knot formed in your abdomen. Jungkook took notes on your body language and pulled away. You cried out when you lost contact.
He leaned in and switched on one of your bed lights, finally giving the room some light. He observed your body. Your ass was still up, your pussy glistening with his spit and your arousal. It was clenching and unclenching around nothing. He let out a scoff before turning you around. Your face already looked fucked out. Tears painted your cheeks, and drool was all over your mouth. He hovered over you, placing a hand on the headboard. He used his other hand to wipe your face clean. âWe have gotten ourselves a good hour; better make this quick, alright?â You nodded softly and wrapped your hands around his neck, pulling him into a soft and tender kiss. He kissed you back and hugged you closely to his body. His hands went under your tee, squeezing your tit. You whined into the kiss. âYou are so sensitive, sweetheartâŠâ he mumbled. You break off the kiss and cup his face. âJungkook⊠want more..â He tilted his head to the side and stared at you. He put on a smirk before standing at the foot of the bed.
He took off his pullover, revealing his tatted arms and toned abs and pecs. The soft bed light that was illuminating the room was able to capture every detail of his body. You stare. Hand in between your legs, squeezed shut. You bit your lip softly before your eyes met his. He gestured for you to come closer, which made you crawl to him. Your face was now right in front of his hard dick. You could see the bulge growing. His hand went behind your head, grasping your hair gently. You looked up at him with your doe eyes, which instantly made him fold, but he kept his composure. He gave you a nod, pushing your head closer to his crotch. Your nose nudged the bulge before your greedy fingers hastily unzipped his pants. Your eyes widened when his cock sprung out and hit his stomach. He was big. Girthy. The tip was red, and you could see his precum peaking from the slit. Without wasting time, you took a stripe from the base of his dick until the tip before you sucked on it. He hissed at the feeling of your plump lips sucking on his sensitive tip. He was starting to get impatient and pushed your head down, filling your mouth even though he was only half way in. You looked at him with teary eyes as you choked around his girth. He almost lost it when you looked up at him with those eyes of yours. His other hand caressed your cheek, pushing himself further down your throat. You could feel him. Your jaws were hurting, and you grabbed onto his hips for stability. Your throat spasmed around his cock. He noticed how you were kinda struggling. âBetter make me feel good, okay? I want that throat to show me what it got.â With that, he started thrusting into your mouth. You started choking and gagging around his length, which just turned him on even more.
He yanked your head off of his cock. A string of pre cum and saliva connected your lips and his cock head. You looked up at him and whined, wanting his dick to stuff your mouth again. He bent down to your level before licking your chin clean, swallowing the mixture before speaking to you. âOn your knees and hands, baby girl." You obliged immediately, taking off your flimsy tee before throwing your ass in the air and arching your back for him. You felt the bed dip behind you, and jungkooks long dick landed on your ass, slowly grinding through the sheer panties.His wet cock making it translucent. You whimpered, already feeling yourself getting hotter. âYou are such a dumbslut.â He lowly chuckled.
âYou think it wasnât obvious?â He removed your skirt and ripped your panties. You gasp at his sudden action. âAll these skimpy skirts and tops.. and just when I'm around? Were you that desperate, princess ?â He said while pushing his cockhead into your sopping hole.
You let out a loud moan; his tip was enough to stretch you out. âNot gonna lie⊠i was very flatteredâ gripping your ass cheeks as he slowly pushed further, letting you adjust to his size. He continued. âI only kept my cool because you were my best friend's daughter, butâholy shit-â he gets cut off as you clench around his length, tears already dripping down your face. Your mind fogging up. You were constantly letting out soft moans and whimpers as he slowly bottomed down into you. âWoah there-â he chuckled. âim not even half way in sweetheartâ he said while grabbing a handful of your hair and pulling your head back. You looked at him with teary eyes. Lips quivering. He smirked before kissing your cheek. He let go of your hair and pushed your head down into the pillow using his hand. The other hand was on your hip as he finally pushed all the way in. âSince you are begging for itâ â you let out a loud scream as he filled you to the brim.
Although it was painful, the pleasure made you forget about the pain. you felt warm spit fall on your pussy as he starts moving. âGonâ fuck you silly, alright? Isnât that what you wanted? Getting dicked down by your father's friend? What a whoreâŠâ You nodded incoherently. A loud cry left your lips as his hips thrust into you harshly. His pace was slow, but the way he thrust in was so... Your body was moving forward with every thrust. Sounds of wet skin slapping echoed through your room. You were not able to focus on anything. His pace increased, and so did the harshness of his thrust. You clenched around him, making him fall forward. He caged your tiny body under his larger one. âFuck babygirl.. you are gonna rip my dick off..â he chuckled. âJungk-kook⊠feels too goodâŠâ you managed to blabber out as he fucked into you like a madman. âYeah? you like that? You liked getting fucked by older men, dont you sweatheart?â You whined as his large hands gripped your hair.
This was wrong. Very wrong. This man has seen you grow up. He has been there since you were a baby.
âLet me hear those pretty soundsâŠâ he said while landing a tight slap on your ass, reddening the area almost immediately. You gasped and whimpered, letting out a loud pornographic moan as Jungkook hit a specific spot. His other hand found your swollen clit and started drawing rough circles on it. Pinching and tugging the abused nub. Your legs trembled, and your moans got louder. âF-fuck! JungkookâŠdonât s-stop! Feels so good!â You babbled. Jungkooks eyes were focused on your pussy. The way you took in his length. Your milky white cream coated his entire length, collecting at the base of his cock.
He stopped thrusting in you for a moment. You whined as you felt him suddenly stop. Jungkook smirked before leaning over and whispering in your ears. âFuck yourself on me, doll.â You cried in defeat. Jungkook placed his hands on his hips, waiting for you to start moving. You gulped before slowly rocking your body forward and backward. You could feel his every inch penetrating the insides of your gummy walls. His large tip hitting your cervix over and over again. âThats all you can do? Wow.. so pathetic..â he scoffed. You shook your head furiously and started going faster. Jungkook let out a satisfied groan as he watched your ass ripple. âPlay with that little clit of yours.â He commanded. You reached down in between your legs, finding the sensitive nub almost immediately. You slowly rubbed your clit, sending shivers down your spine. You moaned out as the stimulation of your pussy and clit was getting overwhelming. You fucked yourself faster on his cock. Mouth in a soft âoâ shape and eyes crossed as his cock hit your gspot every time you moved in and out. Jungkook was in a different world. His eyebrows were furrowed, and sweat dripped down his neck. He was close to cumming just by seeing you fuck yourself on him.
His hands spread your ass cheeks, before a glob of spit landed on your asshole. You shuddered and panicked, stopping for a moment. âJ-jungko-?â âJust focus on fucking yourself; everything is going to be alrightâŠâ he reassured you. You nodded before going back. His long fingers toyed with your rim. You grunt when you feel his fingers prod into your asshole. âShh- shh.. youre safe .. jusâ wanâ try something new..â You gulped and shut your eyes tightly as his fingers ventured further into your asshole. He shoved three of his fingers into you, making you moan out loud. âFuckkkkk- so tightâŠâ he whispered. You melt and crumble when you feel his fingers move inside of you. You buried your head in your pillow, muffling out any unholy noise.
Your pussy and asshole clenched around his fingers and dick, making him groan. âSo damn sensitive⊠has any guy fucked you, this good princess?â You shake your head. âN-no sir âŠâ Jungkook shot up at the name. His fingers increasing in speed. You let out choked-out moans and cries as his fingers curled inside your asshole. âSay that again, will ya?â His other hand found your hips and started stretching your pussy out again. âPlease.. f-fuck me harder⊠sir.â That was all it took to make Jungkook go feral. His cock left your pussy and was immediately shoved inside your sensitive ass. Your eyes shot out, and you couldnât make any noise as you looked back at jungkook with tears rolling down your cheeks. He pinned your wrists behind your back before moving in and out. He struggled, initially. curse him for not stretching you out more, but his cream-coated cock provided enough lube for him to start pounding into you smoothly. âShits so fucking tight- gah-â your lips quivered and legs trembled as Jungkook fucked into you with great strength.
You screamed out, finally getting your voice back after he fully plunged his cock into you. Your cunt was leaking arousal, dripping down your thighs. Jungkook didnt seem to stop. His heavy, cum-filled balls were slapping against your pussy. âJungkoookâŠ- its too- too much!â You cried out. âTake it. You are a big girl. Take it like a big girl. I know you fucking can. Look at your little ass sucking me in. So good. So fucking good.â He pulled your body back and pounded into you. Your face was a mess. You cried and moaned like a bitch in heat every time he filled you to the brim. You felt your orgasm approaching as the feeling of the familiar knot in your stomach began growing. âJung-jungkook- gonâ cumâŠâ you whined. âGo on princess⊠be a good girl and cum all over me..â you nodded weakly, focusing on reaching your high. Jungkook flipped you over, laying you down on your back. His hands pushed your legs up against your chest. You were in ecstasy as the new position had you seeing stars. You observed Jungkook's sweaty body and fucked-out face.
A slap was landed on your glistening, sopping pussy before two fingers were shoved inside them. His thumb stimulating your clit. âNgh- oh fuck- jungkook mâ so closeâŠ!â Your eyebrows were knit together, and sweat dripped down your face. The overstimulation getting too intense. Both his hips and hands increased their pace, determined to help you reach your high. You saw white as Jungkook pressed down on your sensitive bud. Clear liquid gushed out of your pussy and landed on his abdomen. You screamed as he continued fucking you through your orgasm. âYeah.. just like that.. so dirty.. you are such a dirty little girl..â Jungkook's movements got sloppier. Your orgasm turned him on by a mile, and he was close to cumming himself. You twitched under him, still not over your intense orgasm, not noticing that he had slipped out of you and was furiously jerking himself off. His head was thrown back, and soft moans left his mouth. His breath hitched when a load of his milky white cum shot out all over your body. Coating your stomach and your boobs. You moan as you feel his hot cum land on your body, taking the mixture in your shaky fingers and licking it off while staring into his eyes. Jungkook smirked at you with half-lidded eyes.
âMy dirty little girl."
A/N: HEHE THANK YEWWW 4 READINGGG! how was it tho? This would have been a stepcest fic but i changed my mind in the middle đđ im currently writing fics from my inbox! You can send in your rqs <3
#ౚৠâïœĄË yunâs silly fics#bts#bts reactions#bts smut#bts x reader#bts army#bts fanfic#bts headcanons#bts scenarios#jeon jungkook#jungkook headcanons#jungkook x y/n#jungkook x reader#jungkook reaction#jungkook scenarios#jungkook smut#bts jungkook#jungkook#jeongguk#jeon jungguk#kpop hard hours#kpop headcanons#kpop smut#kpop
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
Revenge - Tommy Shelby
Summary: Reader takes personal offense over Sabiniâs attack on Tommy
Warnings: arranged marriage, graphic depictions of violence, reader leaves a message written in blood, smut, creampie, light degrading, oral smut (f receiving), overstim, p in v, let me know if I missed any
Notes: I made this text post about protective reader and decided to write it lmfao. I want Tommy with a feral woman. Thank you to @slut4thebroken for proof reading, encouragement, and suggestionsđ
MDNI, 18+ only
You werenât quite sure how it had happened.
Scratch that.
You knew exactly how it had happened.
Your father and Tommy had worked out a deal when Sabini had first started trying to intimidate your father. A bride in exchange for protection and both of them walked away with extra allies when the inevitable war against Sabini broke out. Youâd protested the marriage at first, screaming that you were more than just a political pawn for your father to sell when he needed help, but it went through anyway.
You had to admit, it wasnât the worst thing that couldâve happened. Sure, Tommy was distant and seemed obsessed with work, but you knew you couldâve ended up in a much worse situation. He treated you with respect, never let you open a door on your own if he was around, always had a protective hand rested in the small of your back, and⊠the sex was great.
Perhaps the thing you appreciated the most, was that he didnât expect you to become the housewife you had feared you would be reduced to. You were your fatherâs only child, meaning when he died, you would become leader of his gang. You were a gangster the same way Tommy was and he seemed to realize that and respect it. You helped out with the daily runnings of the Peaky Blinders and helped with the daily runnings of your fatherâs gang at the same time. They both recognized your potential and werenât afraid to use it.
It wasnât until you were sitting in a family meeting about a year after your marriage that you realized you had grown to feel more than just okay with the marriage.
Tommy was a closed off individual and through the entire year you had been married, you felt like you were just starting to finally get to know the real him. You never pried because he never pried in your life. If you had general questions, neither of you were afraid to ask them, but anything more was left up for the person to tell. You had more questions than answers still, specifically about the matching scars on his cheeks, but you didnât dare ask. He hadnât asked about the scar that ran from your right shoulder blade down to your spine, so you didnât ask about his scars.
It was a common occurrence for Esme, Ada, and Polly to sit with you at one of the desks in the betting shop, whispering things to you during family meetings to fill in any gaps and answer any questions you may have had.
âAlfie has informed me that the Sicilians are being provided aid by Sabini, in the form of cars and housing,â Tommy started, causing Arthur to let out a loud groan of frustration.
Before you could get dragged into hearing any more of it, you turned your head to Esme who was sitting next to you.
âSabiniâs a prick, I know that, but what has he done to us?â You asked quietly, your eyes still flickering back-and-forth between Tommy and the rest of his family as they spoke about what to do next.
Esme began explaining exactly what Sabini had done. How he and five other men came after Tommy in the dark of night, how heâd ripped out a tooth, sliced his cheeks, and beat him to an inch of his life.
The rage that settled inside of you was your first hint that you had grown to genuinely care for Tommy as more than just a friend and (amazing) fuck buddy. Your jaw remained clenched and set for the rest of the meeting, but as soon as the meeting was called to end, you wiped the look from your face and forced a calm expression to take over.
You stood up and walked over to Tommy, forcing a small smile to your lips,
âIâm not really feeling all that well. You go with your brothers for a drink, Iâm just going to head back home, okay?â You said, meeting his eyes so he wouldnât have a reason to not believe you.
Tommyâs eyebrows furrowed together as he tried to look for any sign you were lying. You had been fine that morning and fine two hours prior when you sat down for the meeting, but he had no reason to believe you were lying so he simply nodded, placed a hand on the small of your back to pull you closer to him, and kissed your forehead.
âI wonât be out long. Ask Frances for anything you need, okay, love?â
You nodded and the forced smile turned to a genuine one,
âI will, promise,â you told him before stepping away from him and waving goodbye to the rest of the family.
Yes. You had truly gotten lucky when it came to who you had been forced to marry.
The entire ride back to the Arrow House, you were silent and going over your plan in your head. You knew youâd have to earn Tommyâs trust back after this, but you didnât particularly care. You were a force of nature on your best day. You were lethal when you were angry.
Once you arrived back, you immediately headed upstairs to yours and Tommyâs shared room. The marriage may have started off with the two of you in separate rooms, âIâm called the devil, but that doesnât mean Iâm some sort of monster. You can sleep in your own room until youâre comfortable sharing a bed,â but it didnât take more than a couple weeks for you to eventually join him in bed.
Damn those blue eyes, full lips, and that jawline.
You grabbed a small bag and threw the first set of clothes you laid hands on into it, then, much more carefully, a dress. You grabbed everything else you needed and headed to Tommyâs office next.
Iâll be back soon. Iâm sorry for lying, but Iâll be back.
You signed the note and left it in the center of his desk where you knew he would see it, held down by his ashtray.
As quickly as you had entered the house, you left it, getting right back into the car with the driver Tommy had employed for you. You told him the name of a hotel in London that you knew was just outside of anyoneâs territory.
The drive seemed to pass by too quickly and soon you were saying goodbye to the driver and sending him home for the night. It was barely 7 in the evening when you got up to your room.
âIf there is a God, please let me get through this. Iâll make it up to you⊠somehow,â you said quietly.
The beading on the dress swayed loudly around your body as you pulled the dress on. The pins in your hair seemed to be extra noticeable against your scalp. The straps on your shoes pressed into your skin more than usual. The blade held against your thigh and hidden by your dress seemed to refuse to warm up. Your left hand felt entirely too light with your ring missing.
You knew it was only your mind playing tricks on you. Youâd worn this outfit before and it had always turned heads, which is exactly what you wanted.
You needed Sabini to notice you.
You greeted the cab driver politely as you stepped in and ignored the way his eyes seemed to follow you a bit too closely.
The doors of the club were held open for you and you made your way to the bar and took a seat, knowing you were just playing a waiting game now.
You could feel eyes on you. The wife of Thomas Shelby in Sabiniâs club, hours away from Birmingham, far out of Peaky Blinders territory or her fatherâs territory. You stuck out like a sore thumb, even if you would have blended in during any other scenario.
It felt like an eternity passed before you finally saw the man that made your blood boil, but one glance at the clock above the bar told you it hadnât even been an hour.
âYou seem lost. I thought we had made it clear that your kind werenât welcomed here,â Sabini said once he was in front of you.
A charming smile graced your lips and you looked up at him,
âMy kind?â You questioned, playing innocent.
âYes. Your kind. Youâre the wife of Thomas Shelby and I donât appreciate him ignoring the last warning I gave him and sending you-â
âI wasnât sent here,â you stopped him, lifting your left hand and pushing a piece of hair that hadnât fallen back behind your ear, âand Iâm not really a Shelby or a Blinder, am I?â
His eyes were drawn to your hand and noticed the lack of a ring you wore and he quirked an eyebrow at you.
âIs that so? I was under the impression the two of you were lovebirds.â
You pulled your bottom lip between your lips and looked away, trying to come off as shy. When you looked back up to him, you hoped the look on his face meant he was intrigued and believing you.
âPerhaps we could talk about it somewhere else⊠somewhere private?â You asked him, batting your eyelashes as you did so.
Gods help you. The smirk he gave you made your stomach twist and you wanted nothing more than to wipe it off his face, but patience was something youâd adopted a lot of.
âAllow me to show you to my office then,â he said, offering you a hand which you forced yourself to take.
He guided you through the club and towards the back. Some amount of luck seemed to be on your side as his office was behind the stage and provided some cover for any noise you might make. Even more so as you noticed a window just large enough for you to be able to crawl out of.
Once the door was shut behind you, he sat down behind his desk and motioned for you to take a seat in one of the chairs on the opposite side.
âTrouble in paradise, I take it,â Sabini said as he poured you both a drink.
âIt was never paradise to begin with,â you replied, thanking him for the drink and taking a sip.
You had grown used to Tommyâs Irish whiskey and the bourbon he gave you wasnât nearly as smooth going down.
âWas it not? From what Iâve heard, you two have quite the fairytale. Gang leaderâs daughter married off to another gang leader, uniting two empires.â
âThatâs not the way I see it,â you lied.
âAnd how do you see it?â
âA desperate father sold off his daughter to a desperate gang leader in an attempt for the both of them to gain more power and disregarded the womanâs wishes,â you replied simply, shrugging your shoulders.
âAnd so youâve come to London for what?â Sabini questioned, wanting to hear you say it.
âBecause I think we can help each other, Mr. Sabini,â you said, downing the rest of the bourbon and standing up.
His eyes followed your movements, his eyes trailing up your body before resting on your legs again.
âAnd how do you think we could help each other?â He asked.
You moved to stand in front of him, placing one leg over the side of his and straddled him, placing your arms around his neck.
âThey trust me, Mr. Sabini. They donât suspect me of anything,â you started. The shiver of disgust that rolled up your spine due to his hands trailing up the back of your thighs was one he apparently took as excitement as he gripped slightly at the backs of them, âI can tell you everything and, in return, I get out of my marriage once theyâre all gone.â
âThey donât even realize the ticking time bomb theyâve got in their fingertips, do they?â He asked and a chuckle left your lips as a genuine smirk took over.
âThey donâtâŠâ you said, trailing your hands down his chest and then up your thigh, trying to make the move appear seductive. Your fingers wrapped around the hilt of your knife, âand neither do you, apparently.â
His eyes widened and he realized the trap he had walked into at the same time as you pressed the blade of the knife to his neck.
âIâd say that if you ever threaten my husband or our family again, youâll regret it, but you wonât be,â you told him, unable to resist pausing for a touch of dramatic effect before adding on, âNever fuck with a Shelby.â
In the next second, you were quickly slicing the knife across his neck and flinching back as his blood coated you.
You knew your next move was morbid, but you couldnât bring yourself to care. It had been morbid for him and five other men to attack your husband when he was alone. It was morbid for him to rip out his tooth. It had been morbid for him to slice his cheeks. It was just as morbid for you to quickly and quietly clear off his desk, dip your fingers into his blood, and leave a bloodied message across his desk.
Revenge is a scorned Shelby
As soon as the message was written, you grabbed one of the coats from the coat rack and slipped it on, then crawled out of the window. The coat was long enough to cover all of the bloodied mess that was now your dress.
Sabini is dead.
That seemed to be the only thing you could think of as you were driven back to the Arrow House. It wasnât the first time you had killed a man and you knew it wouldnât be last.
But you hadnât told anyone about this time. You hadnât told anyone your plan, where you were going, or why you were doing it. You had also just started a war.
You werenât surprised to see almost every light in the house still on when you arrived, and you made sure to slip the cab driver a little extra for the long drive.
You hadnât risked staying in London longer than you needed to. You had gone into your hotel room, grabbed your bag, and promptly left, only taking the time to slip your wedding ring back on when you were in the cab.
When you stepped into the house, Tommy was in the hallway. All he saw as you stepped in the door was you, in another manâs coat, your wedding ring still on your finger, but your hair and makeup done much differently than it had been you had left.
You stayed silent as you stared at him with nervousness written on your face.
He put out his cigarette and quirked an eyebrow at you, a silent prompt for you to explain yourself.
Your silent explanation was to undo the tie on the coat and let it fall to the floor, revealing your blood stained dress.
âI need a fucking drink for this one,â Tommy grumbled, motioning for you to follow him. He guided you to his office and poured both of you a drink, handed you your glass, then sat down in his office chair. âWhat the fuck did you do?â
âDo you want the short version or the long version?â You asked, a smirk on your face as he looked up at where you still stood across the room.
Despite himself, he couldnât help but chuckle and shrug his shoulders,
âHumor me. Short version first,â he told you.
âAbout a year ago I got married, and tonight I started a war.â
Tommy leaned forward, resting his elbows on his desk and running a hand over his face, âLong version.â
âAbout a year ago, I got married. Over the past year my husband has been nothing but a respectful gentleman, making it nearly impossible for me not to fall for him when you combine it with his fucking blue eyes that could bring the devil to his knees,â you started, feeling the hint of a blush creep into your cheeks, which you knew he noticed by the way his eyes flicked to your cheeks and then back to your eyes, âthen today we had a meeting with his family where he mentioned Sabini. When I asked, his sister-in-law told me about what Sabini had done to him. About how my husband had been beaten to an inch of his life and brutalized, leaving him permanently scarred, and I knew I had to make the bastard pay.
âSo, I lied to my husband and said I didnât feel well. I went home, packed a bag, left him a note saying Iâd be back, and went to London. I rented a hotel room where I changed into a fancy dress and did my hair and makeup, then I wrapped a knife to my thigh and slid my wedding ring into my bag and went to The Eden Club. News of a Shelby woman spread quickly and Sabini showed up to question me within an hour. I lied to Sabini, told him that I didnât want to be a Shelby and that I had never wanted to be one. He took me back to his office and I sat on his lap and made him think I was about to cheat on my husband when I slit his throat and made sure he knew it was because of what heâd done to my husband. I left a message on his desk, went back to the hotel, grabbed my bag, and then headed back to our house.â
Silence filled the room for a long moment as Tommy stared at you. His eyes were unreadable as he watched you.
âWhat did the message say?â He suddenly asked.
âRevenge is a scorned Shelby.â
âNothing about the Peaky Blinders?â He asked curiously, tilting his head slightly.
âNo.â
âNo?â
âNo.â
âWhy not?â
âIt wasnât Peaky business,â you answered confidently, watching him just as closely as he watched you as he stood from his chair and came to stand in front of you.
âWas it not?â He questioned, taking the untouched glass of whiskey from your hand and setting it on the desk before turning back to stare you down.
âNo. It was Shelby business, but not Peaky business.â
âExplain.â
âHe didnât just harm a Peaky Blinder. He harmed a Shelby, my Shelby.â Your gaze was unwavering as you held eye contact with him. You wanted him to know you meant your words. He was yours, and the protective touches on your back when you were in public and the way he intimidated and glared at any man who tried approaching you was all the proof you needed to know that you were his.
âSo Iâm your Shelby?â He asked as he took a step towards you and continued to do so until you pressed against the office door.
âYes.â
âAnd that means youâre mine?â He questioned, his hands now pressed against the wall on either side of your head.
You could feel that you were walking into some sort of trap, but you didnât have a way out of it right now. All you could do was be honest.
âYes.â
âThen you should know something about what it means to be mine.â
âWhatâs that?â You asked, your breathing getting shorter as he lowered his face so it was level with yours.
In a second his hands were on your waist and he had you picked up against the wall with legs instinctively wrapping around his hips.
âMy Shelby is to never come home wearing another manâs coat again,â he said, pressing his lips to yours in a rough kiss.
You donât know what reaction you had expected from him, but being pinned to his office door and him kissing you hadnât been one you had thought of. Your shock wore off after half a second and you returned the kiss as your arms wrapped around his neck to keep him close.
âYouâre not mad?â You asked against his lips.
âAt you starting a war?â He questioned, leaning down and beginning to trail kisses hastily down your neck.
âYes,â you replied, leaning your head back to give him more access.
âLivid,â he said with no hint of joking in his voice.
âThis is quite the punishment,â you replied sarcastically. A moan fell from your lips as he nipped at your pulse point.
âOh, Iâm livid,â he said, looking up at you, âbut also extremely turned on at the thought of my wife slicing a manâs throat over me and coming home still covered in his blood.â
You werenât given a chance to respond before he was kissing you again. Your hands came down to his tie, pulling it loose before starting to work at the buttons of his waistcoat.
He didnât bother setting you down, only turned the two of you around and walked you over to the couch in the office. He laid you down on it and then pulled the waistcoat off before leaning back down between your legs and kissing you again once. His lips started trailing down your neck again while your hands went to undo the buttons of his shirt.
âSomeoneâs impatient tonight,â he teased as nipped at your skin again.
âYouâre the one who pinned me to the door after I revealed I killed a man for you,â you replied in the same teasing tone as him. You undid the last button of his shirt and pushed the fabric off his shoulders, his undershirt following a second later.
He reached his hand to the side of your dress and unzipped it, pulling the fabric down your body while his hands grabbed hold of your underwear, stockings, and garters in the same move and pulled them off, leaving you completely naked underneath him.
He stared and looked over your body a moment longer before running his hands up your thighs and giving a gentle tap to your thigh,
âUp,â he said, causing your eyebrows to furrow in confusion.
You did as told though and sat up, leaving him enough room to lay on his back and pull you up to straddle him,
âWas killing a man not enough work?â You teased, not actually minding if he was going to have you ride him. At least it meant you wouldnât be subjected to him teasing you when all you really wanted was for him to fuck you.
âThatâs cute,â he said sarcastically, gripping your thighs and attempting to pull you further up his torso, âthatâs not where youâre sitting tonight.â
The man was no stranger at using his mouth to make you see stars, but youâd never ridden his face before. You looked at him, the question obvious on your face.
âSeriously?â You asked even though you knew by his face that he was.
âSeriously. You were enough of a leader to go after Sabini, youâre enough of a leader to sit on my face. Up,â he repeated again while his grip on your thighs tried pulling you forward.
You did as you were told this time, shuffling forward until you were straddling his face. You werenât given a choice of when to sit as his hands came to your hips and pulled you down, forcing your full weight onto his waiting mouth.
If there was one thing you were grateful for, it was Thomasâ ability to use his tongue and lips in more than just outsmarting his enemies.
His tongue trailed through your lips, his hands keeping your hips in place, while his tongue slowly explored you at first.
It had only taken a couple weeks for you to crack and make the first move on Tommy, joining him in bed one night when youâd decided you could trust him, and youâd been insatiable and addicted to him ever since, though he never complained. Heâd spent the first couple times figuring out every move that made you tick and every name that made your cheeks flush and used them to his advantage at every turn.
His tongue was a gift with the way he knew exactly how to use it. He dragged it up and down between your folds, drinking in every bit of your arousal before focusing on your clit, alternating between quick flicks and long drags.
Tommyâs hands on your hips began guiding them, silently instructing you to take control. You didnât hesitate in going along with what he wanted you to do and began rocking your hips. One of your hands trailed to his hair while your other went to lay on top of one his that gripped your hip. You hadnât realized the volume of your moans until you felt the vibration of his moan against your clit.
Your hips jerked at the added stimulation and he hummed against you purposefully, his eyes never leaving you as your hips sped up, chasing your own high. Within moments you could feel it approaching and your grip on his hair and hand tightened, moans of his name falling from your mouth like a prayer.
âPlease, fuck,â you cried, whimpers falling from your lips, âTommy, TommyâŠâ
Your high crashed over you a moment later and you felt Tommyâs movements begin to slow down as you rode out your high, your chest rising and falling rapidly as you caught your breath.
You went to move off of him, but his grip on your hips tightened at the same time that his tongue started speeding up again.
Your moans of pleasure turned to whimpers of over stimulation and you squirmed against him, but he didnât let up. Your hips jerked as you tried moving away from him, but all it did was add to the stimulation.
You could practically feel him smirking underneath you as he continued on, watching as your eyes clenched shut and you relented yourself to letting him torture you so beautifully.
If it wasnât for the way your body was on edge from not being given any type of break after your first orgasm, you might have felt slightly ashamed at the way he was able to bring you to your second orgasm so quickly.
And then your third.
Tears were freely falling from your face when he finally slowed his movements to a stop and helped you to lay down on your back.
He trailed soft and slow kisses along your thighs and stomach to help bring you back down to earth. When his lips reconnected with yours, you returned the kiss, letting your eyes fall shut at the surprisingly tender moment.
âNext time you want to start a war, at least let me know your plans,â he said, causing you to open your eyes and be met with a smirk dancing across his lips, âand donât doubt my punishments.â
You couldâve smacked the smirk off his face if it wasnât for the fact he had turned your entire body into mush.
âThink you can be a good girl and handle one more?â He asked.
Your cheeks flushed at the praise and his hands moved to his belt and pants, pulling them off after you nodded your confirmation.
Once the rest of his clothes had been removed, he gently lifted your legs and positioned himself between them. He was gentle as he pushed inside you, but the smirk on his face from the way your voice cracked when you moaned was obvious.
The stretch was familiar at this point, but it didnât mean you didnât need the moment he gave you to adjust. When you nodded your head, he started moving.
Tommy knew your body like he knew his own after your time together. His hips immediately changed position as he started thrusting, making sure to hit the spot inside you that added to the ways your legs shook underneath him.
He leaned down and placed his elbows on either side of your head, capturing your lips in a kiss right as a moan parted through them. One of his hands came back to cradle the back of your head and his fingers tangled into your hair to keep you close to him.
His other hand went to one of your legs and pulled it up so it rested in the crook of his elbow, causing him to hit even deeper inside you.
The action caused you to let out a high pitched moan and you wrapped your arms around him. Your next moan broke the passionate kiss the two of you had shared while your nails raked down his back.
âWho do you belong to?â He asked, beginning to speed up the movements of his hips.
âY-you,â you moaned out, your back arching underneath him.
âSay my name. Who do you belong to?â He repeated.
âThomas Shelby,â you answered and dropped your head back.
âGood girl. Youâre my fucking wife,â he moaned out. He sat up, using one hand to keep your leg up in the same position while his other hand went to your already over sensitive clit, âall mine. No other man gets to touch you, look at you, or even fucking think of you. Itâs my cock that youâre whimpering over right now, and itâs the only cock youâll ever be whimpering over again.â
âIâm yours, Tommy,â you repeated, your voice breaking as moan after moan fell from your lips.
âThen cum for me. Be a good Shelby wife and make a fucking mess on my cock just like how you made a mess of this war tonight,â he commanded.
You didnât need any more encouragement from him as your fourth orgasm hit you, causing your back to arch again and your nails to run down his arms.
His moves start to become more sloppy and his pace sped up as he began to chase his own high, the feeling of your cunt squeezing around his cock only driving him closer to the edge.
âWant to feel you Tommy, please,â you moaned underneath him, âplease, cum inside me.â
âFuck,â he swore out. His hips pushing against yours as his high hit him and his arms came down to either side of your head again while he shoved his face into your neck, completely claiming you as his own while his cum filled you.
His hips slowed as he rode out both of your highs and your arms came to wrap around him, placing a gentle kiss on the side of his head you could reach.
Once the two of your breathing had slowed down to a normal pace, he moved to push himself up and your legs around his waist tightened along with your arms.
âDonât. Not yet,â you said in a quiet voice.
âIâm going to crush you, love.â He placed soft kisses along your shoulders between his words as he tried warning you.
âIâm a grown woman. Iâll tell you if itâs too much,â you replied and began running your nails softly along the shaved part of his head, knowing the motion worked on him every time.
âStubborn,â he falsely chided, but relented and relaxed back into your hold.
âLittle late to the party if youâve just worked that out.â Your reply causing both of you to chuckle. âRemind me to start more wars if it means you fuck me like that every time.â
His hand came down and gently slapped your thigh in response while a burst of quiet giggles left your lips.
âStubborn and a brat,â he teased, sitting up again and carefully sliding out of you.
âToo bad youâre stuck with me,â you responded with a smirk.
âI donât think of it that way,â he said as he stood up and wrapped his arms under your waist and legs before pulling you up into his arms.
âHow do you think of it?â You asked him as he carried you across the hall and into your shared room.
âI think Iâm lucky enough to be married to a woman who killed for me over a years-old attack even though weâd never even said that we loved each other.â He set you down in the middle of the bed before crawling in next to you and pulling you into his chest.
A bright blush rose to your face as he pointed out that you had never even said you loved each other, even though you had admitted to him earlier that you had fallen for him. You didnât know how to reply immediately and you turned in his arms to look up at him, his arms staying locked around your waist.
He didnât seem to expect you to reply though, because he leaned in to you, pressing his lips against yours. The kiss was tender and sweet, as if he was trying to communicate what your actions had meant to him without having the words to say it.
âI fell for you, too,â he finally admitted, âI donât know when it happened, but I know that I realized it tonight. The panic I felt to see your note and to see you come home covered in blood. The anger I felt over seeing you another manâs jacket. The way I felt when you revealed what you had done and whyâŠâ He trailed off, looking down at you and seeming to try and memorize every part of your face, âYouâre mine.â
âIâm yours and youâre mine,â you replied, leaning up to kiss him.
âIâm yours and youâre mine.â
#thomas shelby#thomas shelby smut#thomas shelby x reader#Thomas Shelby x reader smut#tommy shelby#Tommy Shelby smut#Tommy Shelby x reader#Tommy Shelby x reader smut#cillian murphy imagine#cillian murphy#cillian smut#cillian murphy x y/n smut#cillian murphy x fem!reader#cillian murphy x reader smut
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
Summary: Raccoon City, 1998. Leon, a rookie officer, encounters an exceptionally unique girl while on patrol. Captivated by her and concerned for her well-being, he decides to take her under his protection. Slowly, his thoughts increasingly revolve around her, and his concern for her safety turns into an obsession. Pairing: Developing Yandere Leon x Puppy Hybrid Reader Tags: NSFW, MDNI, Smut, Oneshot, Mild Slowburn, Female Masturbation, Sex, Creampies, Dubcon, Controlling behavior, Incredibly Naive Reader, Non Outbreak AU, Fingering, Pillow Humping, baby trapping, mentions of past trauma/medical related trauma, Umbrella corporation being evil, sweet sex, fluff, no use of y/n, heat cycles. WC: 14.6K
A/N: This was a commission for the ever wonderful and lovely @explorevenus. I loved writing this and I hope you love it too. <3 Also thank you @dollfacefantasy for beta reading for me. :)
Read on AO3 || Ask Box || Masterlists
Thick fog permeated the area obstructing Leonâs view through the windshield of his cruiser. He didnât really see a point in traffic patrols on nights like this; the road wasnât visible, nor was any potential crime. Though he had to admit it was nice being able to sit and listen to the radio with nothing else to pull his attention.Â
The particular strip of highway he was monitoring connected to the dense and dark woods that began the separation from the city to the mountains â it wasnât uncommon for the shadows of the wildlife to occasionally dance against his headlights before the animal skittered off. It was something that used to unnerve him, but heâd grown used to it by now.Â
The night bore on with little eventfulness, it was nearly midnight and time for Leon to phone in that he was ending his shift. Another night, exactly the same as before.Â
Carefully, he pulled the vehicle out onto the road, keeping just slightly below speed to make up for the lack of visuals. Not paying much attention to anything besides the dim road ahead, he didnât process anything in his peripherals â especially not the figure running towards the street.
âShit!â He exclaimed, slamming the breaks. While the impact wasnât high speed, it was too fast to stop in time â as he braced himself by squeezing his eyes shut, he heard the thump of something hit the hood. By the time he opened his eyes, he caught the tail end of the body rolling off and onto the road.Â
âAre you alright?â He called out, not sure yet if it had been an animal or a person, as he shakily made his way over to the scene. His breath hitched upon the sight. âWhat the hell?â A girl, naked and ragdolled onto the pavement with a nonhuman set of ears and tail. Leon bent down, pressing his fingers to her neck. âSheâs got a pulse, thatâs good. Hey, can you hear me?â No sound came from the girl before him.
He knew he shouldâve called for backup, had the paramedics on the way â but something about the whole situation was so peculiar it had his mind working at a negative speed. Gently he rolled her onto her back. There was no blood, just some scuffed up bruising on the girlâs left side from the impact, a goose egg forming on her head.Â
Gently he tugged on one of the dog-like ears, expecting it to be part of a costume or a headband. Leon was thoroughly perplexed when he realized they were attached to the girlâs head, nearly jumping back when they twitched. A pained groan left her mouth as she moved a bit, coming back to the conscious world, eyes lazily opening. Another muted mumble left her mouth as she rubbed at her head before sitting upright.
âMiss?â Leon put his hand on her shoulder trying to get her attention again.
She met his gaze and in an instant recoiled from him, growling as she scowled, even baring her teeth.
He noted the way the dog-ears on her head had pointed back all on their own, further evidence of them not being a costume prop. It was absurd, and he wasnât sure whether to be on guard or laugh at her strange behavior. He wasnât sure heâd ever been in such a strange situation in his entire life. âMiss, I need you to take a deep breath for me, calm down.â
She didnât let up, growling at him with more intensity, her stance becoming tighter as if she was winding herself up to spring at him. Despite the hostility, he could see it in her eyes that she was scared.
âIâm not going to hurt you.â He reached his arm out again, slowly. âIâm a cop, I help peopleâŠ.do you understand me?â
She gave him an untrusting glance, eyeing at the hand as if it were offensive to be in her presence, but the growling had stopped. He dared his hand even closer again, this time managing to gently touch her cheek with the tips of his fingers. âYouâre safe with me.â
Her bottom lip quivered before she relaxed a little.
He smiled at her. âCan you talk?â
âYes.â Her voice was hoarse.
âMy nameâs Leon. Do you have a name?â
She shook her head. âI donât know.â
âYou got roughed up pretty good,â He tore his heavy uniform jacket off, wrapping it around her shoulders before standing. âYou too hurt to walk? Need help up?â
She shook her head again, using the hood of the cruiser to wobble back to her feet. He could see the goosebumps on her skin from where the cool air was hitting everything not under the jacket â though he quickly averted his eyes up from where her indecency started. He placed a hand on her back, gently motioning her to follow him to the door of the car, opening it and ushering her into the warmth of the back seat. âWhat happened to your clothes?â
âDonât have any.â She stared back at him, tilting her head to the side, dog ear flopping with it. It was cute, probably the cutest thing Leon had ever seen, and he wasnât even sure what he was seeing still.
âWhere are you from?â
âI donât know.â
âWhat are you doing out here alone?â
She didnât reply, nor did he get a peep out of her for any other questions. When it became clear that she was shutting down, Leon had to think fast. âThese are real, arenât they?â He asked bringing his hand out to touch the soft ears atop her head again. He felt them perk up beneath his hand, and he gave a little scratch to it, hearing the telltale sign of her tale thump lightly against the leathered backseat. âYou like that, huh?âÂ
She responded by closing her eyes, nodding into his touch.
âDo you have somewhere to go?â
âNo.â
Leon wasnât sure what to do with the girl. She hadnât done anything illegal â unless you counted public indecency, but he could tell that probably wasnât by her own choice. On the other hand, she clearly wasnât normal. He didnât even know what to make of the animal attachments or her quirky mannerisms. With her head tilted to the side, he had a more clear view of her neck now, a tattoo catching his attention, it was a red and white logo heâd seen before. âThe umbrella logo?â He asked out loud, more to himself than her.
She responded by jumping back in the seat, growling again, covering the mark with her hand.
âIâm sorry. Iâm sorry.â He said, putting his hands up defensively. He was even less sure what a pharmaceutical company had to do with a girl like her â he could only venture to guess. Whatever happened there, she clearly wasnât happy about it. âI wonât make you go back.â
âI donât want to go back.â
âThen weâre in agreement.â He reached out and grabbed her hand, shaking it. She looked confused by the gesture but didnât stop him. âWhen you shake on something, it means its a deal, you canât go back on it.â
âReally?â
âThatâs right. Why donât you come stay with me for the night? You look like you could use some food and I wouldnât feel comfortable letting you stay out in the cold like this.â
âOk.â He helped slip her arms through the holes in his jacket, zipping it up before clicking the seat belt into place. She squirmed against it in a panic. âNo! No! Get it off!â
âHey, hey.â He cooed again, cupping her cheeks. âItâs alright. Itâs to keep you safe.â She shook her head, fat tears brimming at her lash line. âIt is, I promise.â He held his hand out to her again. She took it this time, mimicking his earlier action of shaking it. âSee? I have to keep my word now.â
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
You werenât sure of the man sitting in the front seat, or why you had to be strapped down again. You hated being strapped down. But there was something about his eyes, they were so kind compared to the scary men in white lab coats. His scent too, sweet and musky, not the sterile chemical smell that was scattered around the labs. Leon was nice. Leon was safe.
The warmth of the moving box you were in was all it took for the soreness and fatigue to catch up with you, eyes growing heavier and heavier until you found yourself sinking into that sweet and comfortable darkness.
âHey, weâre home.â
The familiar sound of Leonâs voice tore you from slumber, annoyed, you let out a grumble readjusting in the seat. Only the jarring feeling of the cold hitting you as the door opened again was enough to yank you fully back to consciousness with a frown. âDonât wanna move.âÂ
He sighed. âThen I wonât make you,â a moment later you were being scooped up into his arms. Being cradled against his chest felt nice, another thing so very unlike the way you were used to being treated.Â
The inside of his home wasnât what you were expecting. Every corner of the small house radiated his scent, and it was warm. Not a concrete wall or blindingly white light anywhere. The couch heâd plopped you down onto was soft, fabric feeling nice against your skin. It couldnât even hold a flame to the sticky leather of Dr. Birkinâs office seat. Sinking into the plushness, you couldnât help but bury your nose into one of the pillows, tail wagging heavily as you took in more of Leonâs scent.
âComfy?â He asked with a soft laugh.
âYeah! Yeah!â
âYou wait right there, Iâll be back. I just need to get out of these clothes, then we can work on getting some food in you.â He ruffled your hair, making you giggle. The heaviness of his jacket and the comfiness of the cushions kept you in place.Â
When he returned, he was in gray pants and a white shirt. He held out some fabric towards you. âI get the feeling clothes arenât something youâre used too, but I think it would be best if you put these on.â There was a light flushing to his face as he said the words, though you couldnât figure out why.
âWhy?â You asked, taking them from his hand. They didnât smell as deeply of him as youâd liked, instead a synthetic floral scent wafted to your nose making your face scrunch up. âThey smell bad. I donât need them.â âBad? Theyâre fresh out of the laundry they should smell like â oh. Your sense of smell is probably a lot stronger than mine, isnât it? Hold that thought.â He ran back up the stairs again, this time coming down with another shirt. He thrust it out waiting until you took it. âThat better?â
Yanking it from his hands, you brought it to your nose, inhaling it. It was much better, wrapped in Leon, you nodded in acknowledgement.
âItâs my undershirt from earlier, thought it might work better. Letâs compromise, you can wear that shirt, but the boxers gotta be fresh since theyâre not as close to your nose.âÂ
You considered his suggestion, rubbing the fabric against your face again. âAlright.â He helped you unzip the jacket and slide it off before slipping the shirt over your head, then holding out the black bottoms for you to step into.Â
You didnât love it, the way the clothes felt against your skin, it was restrictive in a way you werenât used to â but when he praised you, petting your head again you decided you could suffer through the torment of clothing for him.
âGood girl.â He praised again, and you were done for, practically crawling into his lap to get closer to the hand that was scritching behind your ears. âHowâre you feeling?â
âSore, but ok.â
âI think I have some medicine ââ
âNo!â You interjected. Medicine was never a good thing, it meant feeling hazy, fuzzy. It meant waking up with headaches, not feeling like yourself. Medicine was bad.
âItâll make your head and side feel better.â
âI donât care.â
âOk, ok.â He gave in, pulling you closer and wrapping an arm around you, gently running his hand down the back of your head in slow repetitions. âBut if it gets too bad, let me know. Are you hungry?â
âI am.âÂ
He nodded, reaching for the phone on the side table. He said something about a large with extra cheese, but you had no clue what that meant.Â
In fact, when he eventually answered the door and presented you with the triangular piece of food, you were even more confused. âWhatâs this?â
âItâs pizza.â He replied as if that was obvious, holding up the dripping thing and taking a bite out of the pointy end.Â
You sniffed at the unfamiliar food. It looked nothing like the slop that constituted your meals back at the lab. It smelled strange too â but as Leon wolfed down his own piece, you took that as a sign it was safe to eat, even if a little strange.Â
You couldnât stop the moan leaving your mouth as your tongue met it â a strange mix of flavors but all were delicious as it melted in your mouth. Practically inhaling the piece, you scrambled forward to stuff your face with more.
Leon chuckled, rubbing your back. âI get the feeling youâve never been given a decent meal before.â
You shook your head, another piece of pizza dangling from your mouth as you did so.
âWell, from now on you wonât have to worry about that.â He assured. âPromise.â
Did he really mean it? You werenât sure, but so far heâd been nothing but kind. You smiled at him, food still in your mouth as you reached over to shake his free hand, making sure he couldnât go back on his word.
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
The moment the front door flew open, Leon was greeted by the tell tale sign of her presence, feet pattering around against the wooden floors as she bounded towards him. He caught her in his arms like he had every prior day, holding her close and resting his chin on her head.Â
Her tail wagged behind her so fast it was hardly visible, but he could feel the light air current it created. Nothing warmed his heart more.
âYou have a good day, sweetheart?â
âMmm yeah, was boring without you though.â She whined. âThey played the same movie on TV like 8 times!â
He chuckled brushing some hair away from her forehead before planting a kiss there. âThatâs the worst.â He agreed, gently prying the girl off of him so he could make his way further inside the home to begin their evening routine â the same routine theyâd gone through each night since heâd taken her home.
Leon didnât have much going for him, sure he achieved his goal of graduating from the police academy, hell he even got his first pick of the local stations. But it wasnât as fulfilling as heâd hoped. He had no grand career plans, or even life plans. His only reason for joining the police force was so he could help people, something that he rarely even did.
Traffic patrol, pencil pushing, the odd bar fight break ups â that was his life.Â
At least until now.Â
He found his thoughts wandering to her every spare chance he got. The image of her stretched out on the couch taking a midday nap, her curious naivety and childlike wonder over new things. The most mundane of things still revolved around her â and he loved it. Having someone to come home to and worry about gave him a genuine purpose.Â
âLeon?â
âYeah?â He responded as he pulled the soft cotton tshirt over his head.Â
âCan we go on a walk tonight, please? Please?â She begged as she sat on the edge of their now shared bed.
âI donât know, you remember what happened last time - âÂ
âI know, I know. But I swear this time Iâll stay right by your side. Iâll even wear the hat!â
He let out a sigh, it was hard to say no when she was looking at him like that. âWhat has you wanting to go out so badly?â The thought of it dredged up some anxiety. While she was free to run about the property as she pleased, taking her into public was a different challenge all together. Not only were her social skills needing some work, but he was worried that wherever sheâd come from, whoever had kept her originally was still looking for her. Despite the time spent together, she hadnât opened up much about anything still, not that he blamed her.
âThe TV said thereâs a para aid tonight.â
âA para aid?â He had no clue what she was going on about.
âYeah! They showed all these fancy lights and food.âÂ
âOh, the parade! The one down by the carnival.â He said in realization. âI donât know⊠thereâs going to be a lot of people there, lots of smells and noises tooâŠâ
The way she immediately shrunk down on herself, deflated in defeat, broke his heart. Her tail stopped wagging, fluffy ears flattened against the top of her head. It felt so wrong to be the cause of that upset, gut wrenching really. âYou promise to keep the clothes on the whole time, and not run off on me?â
She perked up immediately, so quickly he was under the distinct suspicion sheâd only been feigning her upset to get her way. Even that was endearing though. âPromise!â
âThen we can go for a little bit.âÂ
When she was at home running around in his boxers and shirts, it was adorable. But something about her dressed in his oversized clothes did something to him that he couldnât explain. The gray beanie keeping her ears in place, the blue jacket covering where her tail was belted to her back, the jeans bunched at the waist and pooling at her ankles â it was like a sign of ownership in a way.Â
He wrapped his arm around her, keeping her tucked into his side as they walked. He could see her head darting around every which way as the overwhelming sights came and left their view. âYou alright?â
âYeah. Thereâs just so much.â
âI told you.â He chuckled, squeezing her into him more. âIf it gets to be too much, let me know and we can head home, ok?â
She nodded, but her eyes were already glued on the twinkling set of lights from the moving vehicles ahead of her. Leon moved the two of them forward enough so they could see the floats clearly as they came by.
âTheyâre beautiful.â She said, eyes wide in amazement. He could feel her tail attempting to move under the confines of the jacket-belt combo. It saddened him a bit that she wasnât able to express herself the way she deserved for such a happy moment.
âNot as beautiful as you.â He watched as she looked in the opposite direction of him, despite the glowing multicolored lights of the next vehicle making its way past the crowd, he could still see the twinge of a flush on her cheeks from his comment. She looked pretty like that, soft and vulnerable â he couldnât remember the last time someone gave him that fuzzy feeling, made his heart skip a beat.
âYou really think that?â
âYeah, I do.â
âThen why do I have to cover my ea - â
He shushed her, gently pulling her away from the crowd of people and the ongoing parade, until they were behind one of the teacup carnival rides. âYou know you need to keep quiet about that when weâre out here. You promised.â
âBut I donât understand⊠if you think Iâm pretty then why do I have to hide it?â
âBecause - â He was cut off when a group of teenagers bumped into them.
âMy bad!â The kid said, waving them off as they walked away. The spot the two of them stood in was becoming more and more crowded as the street parade ended. With more people flooding in, Leon realized this wasnât the time nor place for this conversation â but he knew he couldnât leave her so upset either.
âLook, let me take you on one of the rides and we can talk, ok?â
âRides?â
âYeah, I think youâll like it.â He said pointing to large ferris wheel rotating around. âThat one, you get to sit in those carts and once youâre at the very top, youâll get the view of the whole city.â Not waiting for her response, he took her by the hand leading her over to the line. Being halfway through the night there werenât as many people lined up for the rides as there were for the games and food stalls. It didnât take long before the two of them were seated, and the ride began to move.
He could tell by her body language alone the movement had her on edge. âDonât worry, it doesnât go any faster than this. Weâre safe.â
âAnd I can look out?â
âYep, just like I said, look.â He pointed out showing the bustling city below them as the wheel reached its peak.
âOh wow.â
âThatâs where I work.â He said pointing out to the large RPD building. âAnd thatâs where I go to get the groceries.â
âAnd the pizza?â
âOver there.â
Now that the ride had been filled, it began to rotate again, she watched the city intently as it went around a few more rotations. He didnât want to interrupt her intense fascination, so he let her be, only reaching out when she went a little too far over the opened window than he wouldâve liked.
âCan we go again?â
âI can ask.â With the evening winding down more, and only a few others wanting to join the ride, the attendant nodded, allowing them to go again.
This time, her fascination dwindled slightly as she stayed put in the seat. âCan we talk about it now?â
âCovering up?â
She nodded, fidgeting with the cuffs of the jacket sleeve.
âWhen youâre home watching TV, do you ever see anyone that looks like you?â
âNo.â
âItâs because youâre special, one of a kind.â He said tucking a stray strand of hair back under the beanie. âAnd I love that about you. My special puppydoll.â He smiled as she nuzzled into his hand. âBut, because youâre so special, other people might not feel the same. People can be really mean when someone is different than them. I donât want anyone to be mean to you, or worse, hurt you.â
A moment of silence washed over them, she scooted closer to rest her head on his shoulder, the cart swaying slightly.
âThey were mean to me.â
âWho?â
âWhere I came from.â
âOh.â He wasnât sure what else to say to that, it was the most information heâd gotten out of her and it hadnât been a lot, but he was happy that she was confiding something after all this time. âIâm sorry that happened to you . . . Do you want to talk about it?â
âDr. Birkin was the worst. There were two of them actually, lady Birkin and man Birkin. They yelled at me a lot, asked me tons of questions. Sometimes they would put me on this big table and tied me down, poke at meâŠâ As she spoke her voice became more strained, her body tensing up along with it.
It was clear that her short explanation was merely the cliffnoted version of events, and he wasnât going to pry further than that â he got the idea. âHey, its ok.â He cooed, wrapping both arms around her. âYou donât have to worry about them any more. I wouldnât let anyone hurt you.â
âWhat if they hurt you?â She peeked up from where her head had been nestled into the crook of his neck, a small wet patch formed where her eyes had watered.
âWhy would they do that?â
âTheyâre bad people⊠and I wasnât supposed to leave.â
âIâm a cop â its our job to keep people safe. And guess what?â
âWhat?â
âIt makes us much harder to hurt.â
âHey Leon?â
âYeah?â
âCan I try something I saw on the TV?â
âYouâre not going to jump out of here, are you?â
She giggled and shook her head. âNo, I think that would be dangerous.â
âThen go for it.â
He was surprised when her lips met his, her arms slinking around his neck. He returned the gesture, holding her tightly to him, closing his eyes. âYou learn to kiss like that just from watching the TV? Iâm impressed.â
âReally?â
âReally.â
âCan I do it again?â
âIâd never say no.â
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
The wheel came to its last stop, this time the man outside insisting they had to get off. Leon nodded at the man, helping you step out of the cart.
âYou hungry? I think some of the food places are still open if you want to try them. Or we can grab something on the way home.â
âYeah, Iâm starving.â You followed next to him as he was headed over to where the strong cacophony of smells was coming from. Like many experiences with Leon, it was something you couldnât have imagined. Closing your eyes, you sniffed around, trying to identify and take in each individual scent that you could.
A familiar voice broke your concentration, if it werenât for the stupid hat, your ear wouldâve lifted allowing you better access to the sound. Instead it was muffled slightly, soon another familiar voice layered over that one.Â
Swallowing dryly, dared to peek at the offending voices and immediately froze. The Birkins, it was hard to recognize them without their white outfits, but it was them â blonde hair and all, between them a small girl grasping at both of their hands.Â
âNo.â Voice breathless you tried to take a step and grab at Leonâs arm, only to realize he wasnât next to you.
âWhat do you want?â The stranger responded.
âI-Iâm sorr - â The man didnât let you finish, already walking away. Leon wasnât anywhere in your sight, and despite your eyes darting around you failed to pick up on him or his scent. The surrounding crowd was beginning to overwhelm you, too much noise, too much to look at and take in. âL-Leon?â No response, not that your voice could contend with the chatter around.Â
A hand on your shoulder made you jump. âThere you are.â Man Birkin. âWe were wondering where you ran off too.â
Not giving the man a chance to do anything else, you took off. He gripped at the back of Leonâs jacket, almost yanking you backwards, but you caught yourself and slipped out of it, not caring if the surrounding people caught sight of your true form â all you were concerned with was getting away, putting as much distance between yourself and the Birkins as you could.
It wasnât long before the maelstrom of colors and scents from the carnival died down, morphing into a disgustingly musty and cool toned city view. Legs burning, you stopped only to give yourself long enough to pant, trying to catch your breath. Peering around the corner and doing a quick 360, there was no one in sight, not Birkin, not Leon, not anyone.
A new sense of fear encompassed you, the realization you were lost and alone again, just like that night in the woods. Even worse, fear that if Leon did find you, heâd be angry. The hat you were wearing long blew off in the wind, the belt having been ripped off to free your tail â it made running easier. You were exposed exactly in the way youâd promised him not to be, and youâd managed to leave his side too.
âHeâs going to hate me.â You whined into your hands, slapping at your face as the tears began to spill. âIâm so stupid. So stupid.â Â
Once calm enough to think the situation through more, you looked around again to assess your surroundings. The streets were empty, and it was a lot darker than it seemed from the top of the wheel. Eerily quiet too, so unlike the bustling cities you watched on the little box TV at home.Â
Gripping your tail with both hands nervously, you started your trek down one of the narrow roads. If youâd learned anything from the TV, it was that you donât stay in alleyways. Besides that, what knowledge you had was limited, a fact you were now painfully aware of upon realizing that you didnât even have a clue of where you were walking to. A green sign pasted to the wall looked familiar. There was someone wearing clothes similar to Leonâs, and a big white arrow pointing down the path âRPDâ, youâd recognized those symbols from Leonâs uniform, and the huge sign heâd pointed at during the ferris wheel. âCops help people.â You reminded yourself of his words.
You followed the arrow, stumbling about until you were before the gigantic building. A man was leaning against the wall, talking into a small radio. He was huge, the biggest man youâd ever seen, brown hair and muscles everywhere. His clothes werenât quite the same as Leonâs but seemed different than the other people at the carnival. Nervously, you stepped forward. âA-are you a cop?â
He looked down at you, despite his larger and slightly more gruff exterior, his eyes were soft and kind like Leonâs. âNot exactly, something like it though. Are you alright?â
âIâm looking for Leon.â
âLeon? LeonâŠ.oh officer Kennedy. Heâs not working tonight.â
âI know, I got separated from him.â
âAh, I gotcha.â He took a step forward, instinctively you took one back, not trusting of the stranger just yet. âHey, no need to be scared. I can help you.â
âBut youâre not a cop?â You asked, taking another calculated step back.
âNot a cop, but I still work here with Leon. See?â He pulled some type of badge out. It was too far away and too dark to see clearly, but the shape of the badge itself looked like the one Leon usually kept in his uniform pocket. âThe nameâs Chris, Chris Redfield. Come on, you can come inside and wait while I call him.âÂ
âOk.â Where you had been standing it was dark, but once the streetlight fully illuminated your figure, you saw his face change. Sensing no malice, you didnât make a move to run, but you didnât walk any closer either.Â
Chris opted to come to you, eyes narrowing suspiciously at your form. Your ears were flat to your head as you looked up at him. âAre those...real?â It was so similar to your first meeting with Leon, even the large hand coming down to pat your head, scritching at them. It felt so good, youâd let the grip on your tail go, rubbing back into his hand. You recognized the look of concern that spread over his feature, but it was quickly replaced with a smile as he guided you into the building, and past several doors.Â
The man took a seat behind a desk, watching you as he picked up the phone. It rang a few times before he put it back onto the receiver, no answer. âYou donât look so hot. Hungry? Need a drink?â
âPlease.â
âHere.â He said, opening a metal tin before handing it to you. âHomemade by my sister, guaranteed to be delicious.â He stood from the rolling chair he had been seated in, looking down at you. âWait here for me, I think his cell number is somewhere around here. Just donât leave this room, got it?â
Already halfway through scarfing down the sandwich, you couldnât respond. You nodded in agreement though.
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
Leon had never experienced anxiety on this level before, not once in his entire life. One moment he was ordering food, the next he realized you hadnât been by his side. His heart sank.Â
The next hour heâd spend running around the carnival area, up and down the streets where the parade was, only to come up empty handed. When heâd stumbled upon his jacket, he felt sick to his stomach â only worst case scenarios came to mind; your dead body on one of his police reports, headlines about a mysterious science experiment gone missing, or arguably worse â someone else taking you home for their own pleasure.
The thoughts only worsened when he pulled the antenna up from his phone before flipping it open. âLeon? Itâs Redfield. I think I have your uhâŠ.friend here. The one with the extra parts.â
âIs she ok? Is she hurt? Howâd she get - âÂ
âSheâs fine. But we need to talk. Iâm keeping her in my office for right now, no one else is here besides some pencil pushers, but some of the patrolling squads will return soon. I wonât be able to hide her all night.â
âShit.â Leon dug his sneaker into the gravel. âI can be there in 15, no more like 25 with all the traffic leaving. Look Chris, I can explain. â
There was some shuffling and Chris greeting someone on the other end of the line before his voice picked up again. âBad news, some of the teams are already back.â His voice was now a low hushed whisper. âLook, just go home, Iâll meet you there with her. Youâre still at the old sheriff's house right?â
âYeah but wait - â
âGotta go.âÂ
Leon bristled as the call cut off, snapping the phone shut. The walk to his jeep, and the drive back home were done in silence. He felt out of his own body, swishing back and forth on waves of anxiety. He paced back and forth waiting for an update.Â
It felt like a lifetime had passed before the glow of Chrisâ headlights made an appearance through the front windows of the house. Leon couldnât contain the childlike giddiness he felt, bolting out the front door and over to her; crushing her into a too-tight hug.
âLeonâŠâ She whined, attempting to squirm under his grasp.
âNo.â He said firmly, refusing to let go. âI canât believe you ran like that, you promised me.â
âLeon it wasnât -â
âI donât care. Donât you ever scare me like that again, do you understand?â He finally gave her enough room to look up at him. He felt horrible at the knee-weakening stare she gave back, but he couldnât bring himself to calm down enough to comfort her just yet. âGo inside and wait for me, I have to talk to Chris.â
âBut Le - â
âGo.â He said more firmly, pointing towards the front door. He waited for her to slowly make her way towards it, ears down and tail nearly tucked between her legs.
âHey, don't be so hard on her.â Chris said, putting his hand on Leonâs shoulder.
âYeah I know. Iâll apologize later. Thanks for bringing her home.â
âSure thing.â There was a moment of silence that passed between the two men before Chris finally piped up again. âLeon . . . how do you even have that girl? I saw the umbrella logo on her neck, sheâs probably some experiment, or worse, a bioweapon.â
âA what? Her? No. No way.â Leon said, shaking his head. âSheâs different...but harmless.â
Chris sighed. âI think so too, but you never know. How did you even get her? How long have you had her?â
âAlmost a year now. I kind of stumbled on her one night during the end of my patrol. She was so scared, I couldnât send her back Chris, not if you saw that look in her eye.âÂ
âI get it.â The taller man said. âYou should be more careful. Iâm not sure the ins and outs of it all myself, but I know that higher ups in the S.T.A.R.S. unit sometimes work with Umbrella. I wouldnât even be surprised if that girl was reported to them already. Iâd keep her away from the city from now on.â
âYouâre right.â It wasnât like heâd let her go out often as it was, but after tonight, he was realizing that she wasnât made to go out at all. She was far better off here, at home. He also knew that she wasnât going to like that change - but it was for her own good. âYouâre not going to uhâŠsay anything are you?â
âNah.â Chris shrugged. âI donât see a point, it wouldnât benefit anyone. Sheâs better off with you, I think.â
âWell thanks again for bringing her back.â
âNo problem. If you two need anything, let me know.âÂ
Leon nodded, he watched as Chris made his way back to his vehicle and waved him off, not moving until it was out of sight. The anxiety from the evening hadnât fully left Leon, and now that she was back home and it was just the two of them, he was nervous. Not in the sense that he thought they would have a confrontation, but he knew given everything it would be awkward and he hated the feeling of awkwardness.Â
âHey, sweetheart?â He called out noticing she wasn't splayed across the couch like he expected. The non-immediate response set off alarm bells in his head, but he was relieved when she came trodding downstairs in her usual attire.Â
âWhat?âÂ
As expected, she didnât look happy, brows knitted together anger written all over her face. He pulled her into another hug with one arm, his free hand gently smoothing over the top of her head, focusing on her ears in a short rhythmic pattern. âIâm sorry for snapping at you like that. Iâm just happy youâre safe, and home.â
âI didnât mean to run off.â She mumbled against him, clinging to him in a hug of her own. âReally. One moment I couldnât see you anymore, and I saw the Birkins there. It was so scary, I didnât know what to do.â
âI should have kept a closer eye on you. Iâm sorry.â Leon gave her a quick peck of the lips before pulling back.
âLeon?â
âYeah?â
âAm I in trouble? I let Chris see me and -â
âNo. No, youâre not in trouble.â
âAre you going to be in trouble?â
âNo, Iâll be fine. Chris is a cool guy, you can trust him.âÂ
âOk.â
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
It was about a week after the night at the carnival that you noticed something was different between you and Leon now. You werenât sure if it had to do with the kiss, or the rest of the evening. A sneaking suspicion told you it was likely both.Â
Since that night, he never seemed to leave you alone. It wasnât a bad thing, at first. New rules in place meant you werenât allowed outside without him now, even on the property. He taught you how to use the house phone just so he could start calling several times a day to check in. When he was home, he was all over you, scarcely allowing you to even remain in a single room by yourself.Â
It was all for your own safety, is how heâd explained it.
He cared about you more than anyone else ever had, and the added attention made your stomach tingle, tail wagging and ears perked.Â
But soon it became too much, suffocating as time went on. It left you with torn feelings, on the one hand you knew you should be grateful to Leon, should soak in all the affection he bathed you in. And you wanted to really. Guilt ate away at you every time one too many hugs became irritating. One too many phone calls pulling your concentration from your current task. Going stir crazy in the same 4 walls day in and out. Not even being able to sit alone on the porch for a minute of solace.Â
It was so reminiscent of the lab, and you hated yourself for making that connection â because Leon was not like the Birkins or anyone else there. He was kind. He was sweet. You loved him. Moreso, even being locked within the house, you had more freedom than those sterile white walls and blinding lights that youâd grown accustomed to.Â
You felt shameful disgusted with yourself for harboring such thoughts. Despite that, the annoyance didnât go away, it only grew despite yourself.
âLeooonnnnnn.â You whined, angrily tapping your fingers against the kitchen table. âYouâve been gone every day this week.â
âI know, I know. But Marvinâs been out sick, they needed someone to cover his shifts. Next week Iâm all yours.â He said, ruffling your ears and kissing the top of your head like he always did. It was a small comfort, enough that you felt your tail do a single little thump against the seat. It wasnât enough this time to improve your soured mood.
âI havenât been out of the house in almost two weeks and that was just to sit on the porch. Iâm bored. Canât we go on another walk?â
âI told you to stop asking me that.âÂ
You recoiled. He didnât yell, Leon never yelled, but his voice was sharp and cut like a knife. His usually soft features were pointed with irritation, and it seemed so unfitting for him. It was only the second time heâd ever snapped at you like that. He wasnât wrong either, youâd been shot down every time youâd asked, and when you kept up the onslaught of begging, he had respectfully told you to stop.Â
âI know, Iâm sorry.â
âDonât be.â He said as he idly grabbed the ingredients for dinner. âI know youâre going a little stir crazy here, I get it. Really.â
âDoes that mean you might change your mind?â
âNo.â He said, shooting you a weak smile.
âBut you just said you understood.â
âI do understand. But sometimes whatâs best for us isnât what makes us happy, we gotta stick it out.â
âHow long do I have to stick it out?â
âI donât have an answer for that. But I promise it wonât be forever.âÂ
You werenât sure if you believed him, but nodded anyway. âOk.âÂ
This time when he ruffled your hair, you felt a strange warmness waterfall over you. It had you squirming in your seat. âCan I go sit on the porch while you make dinner at least? Please?"
He shot you a warning look, but it softened in an instant. "Fine, but only the porch, not a step past it. "
"Thank you! Thank you!" You cheered, assaulting his cheek with an onslaught of kisses the moment he'd agreed. You heard him say something as you skittered off, but it didn't register, beyond happy to finally have a taste of fresh air - a view of something that wasn't the same set of walls for the first time in weeks.
The air slapped your face immediately. It was chilly outside, so much so you were debating heading back to grab a coat or a blanket, but the fear that you may not be granted permission to go back out if you even stepped an inch back into the house, kept you planted. A little cold was nothing compared to feeling of the wind in your hair, the different scents of nature drawing their way into your nose.
Your ears twitched, picking up the sound of something nearby. Chirping. A bird! It was perched in a tree at the end of the property where the well-groomed lawn spread out into the wilderness that spanned beyond the old fence.
The bright red was unlike anything you'd ever seen before in person. You wanted a closer look, just to observe it, halting the moment your foot lifted off the threshold of the porch. Leon had only permitted you to stay on the porch. He trusted you.
Your legs felt antsy, burning with the need to move, run. Your mind itched with the want to get closer to the small bird before it flew away. Before you were confided to the house again. A pathetic squeal-like whine worked its way from the back of your throat as you gripped the ledge of the porch, bouncing your legs up in down as if you were marching. You just wanted to see it.
Sure Leon would be mad if he knew, but if you were quick enough, only a minute, then he'd never know. Besides, you would still be on the property, technically.
Apprehension settled in your stomach, tethering you to the porch. "Leeeoonnn, I'm hungry. Is dinner almost done?" You called, cracking the back door open just enough to hear his response.
"Five more minutes." He called back, "I promise you won't starve, just wait out there for me, we can eat on the porch tonight."
"Ok!"
Five minutes. The door closed with a creak, the latch of the doorknob clicking into place. The fiery bird was still there, perched happily on the branch. Five minutes. You repeated on more time before taking off.
It felt so good, the bottoms of your feet flattening against the grass with each step. The wind knocking your hair backwards out of your face as you ran, tail and ears pointed. You had to resist the urge to spin, arms out, happy to be in the center of the open yard again. But there was only limited time, and you needed to make sure your little trip meant something.
Five minutes. "Crap." You muttered to yourself. "How long has it even been since he first said 5 minutes?" Realizing you didn't have the time to linger, you continued your journey jogging until you clutched the fence with both hands. "Ow!" The fence was splintered a part from age, but you hadn't expected it to bite you.
Only one hand was injured, little speckles of blood forming against your skin. The most damage done to your index and middle fingers. You shoved them into your mouth to suck and lap at the injury, ignoring the metallic taste in favor of finalizing your mission.
There it was in all its glory, this fat red bird seated in its nest. It turned its head side to side a few times as if looking down at you. "Wow." Murmuring around your injured fingers, your free hand cam up to reach out to it. It chirped and hopped around before fluttering it's wings and landing on your extended finger.
Eyes wide as saucers, your face almost hurt from how outstretched your smile was. Despite being so plump looking, the bird was surprisingly lightweight. It chirped a few more times. "Hello." If not for the stinging in your left hand reminding you of the current situation, you'd have felt like the Disney princesses Leon showed you.
Leon that's right, dinner would be done soon and you had no idea how much of the five minutes had been wasted. The turning off the doorknob in the distance had your ear twitching in that direction. It was too late to head back.
The sound of plates crashing to the wooden flooring made you want to cry, the bird sitting on your finger kept you where you were. Your hope was that maybe Leon would see it, understand why you'd done what you did, but the heavy stride of his steps told you otherwise.
"Leon -"
"Don't."
The last loud step by your side had the bird flying away, making you sad.
"You promised me! The first time I give you an ounce of trust and this is what you do?"
"I'm sorry - "
"You're always sorry! Do you want to be taken away? Do you want to go back to the lab, or worse be stuck with some stranger?"
"No."
"Go back inside."
"Leon the food -"
"Go. Back. Inside."
It was the first time Leon ever looked genuinely angry, his sky blue eyes feeling like lasers boring into the back of your head as you shamefully walked back towards the house. The remnants of dinner scattered over the porch from where he'd dropped them.
"Careful." He commanded, lifting you from behind to help you up and over the mess of glass and food, though the tone was far more annoyed than caring. You stood in the corner of the living room, watching him stomp around the kitchen, opening and closing cabinets a little too roughly as he grabbed cleaning supplies.
Even the way he knelt down to begin scraping up the glass and food remnants off the ground just radiated negativity. "I can help clean it up."
"Don't bother." He said, getting as much of the mess into the dustpan. You sunk to the floor, pulling your knees to your chest, a defensive pose learned when you were still with the Birkins.
Leon didn't say another word to you as he stormed around the place, and you didn't have the guts to say anything to him either. You were in trouble. Real trouble.
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
 He can't remember the last time he was so angry. He didn't usually get angry. Just wasn't that kind of guy. On the rare occasion it did happen, he was pretty good at reigning it in.
Now though? It felt like pure heat radiated from every vein in his body. He couldn't breathe without steam working its way from his lungs. He wasn't sure what he was the most upset about, the breach of trust? The defiance? Or maybe the way she batted those lashes, the stupid bird on her hand.
Manipulative. That's what she was being, he was sure of it. Manipulative because she thought she understood how things worked, thought she could just decide to do whatever she wanted without consequence. Worse, she thought he was a pushover that would just allow it at every turn.
He pinched his nose, leaning against the counter. When he finally felt a little more numb to his emotions, he allowed himself to look over to where she was sitting, curled up in the corner like a child. He wasn't sure if it was genuine submission he was viewing, or another way of trying to get under his skin. The gurgling of her belly coupled with the silence from her mouth was enough to at least draw his focus from the situation to her immediate needs.
Leon pulled the phone off the receiver, speed dialing the Chinese place. He wasn't in the mood to cook again, and while he didn't want to reward your misbehavior, he couldn't help the pull of the crab rangoon, knowing it would make his own mood improve.
"Get up." The words came out harsher than he had intended and when she flinched from him, he felt nauseous. He cleared his throat, trying again, this time much softer. "I need you to get up, you can't stay there all night."
"Are you mad at me?"
"Yes." She look like she'd been shot. "But I won't be forever. " He gently tugged her arm, helping her to her feet. He ruffled the hair on her head before smoothing his hands over her ears a few times. "I ordered something to eat. Let's talk before it gets here."
It wasn't a request, but he still appreciated the nod he got in return as he led her over to the couch. He had to admit now that he was mellowing out, he didn't like the invisible separation between the two of them. Now he finally understood what people meant about the tension being thick enough to cut. The way she was sat, stiff as a board hands palm up in her lap, he bristled once he realized one of them was injured. If it weren't for the still lingering simmer of anger in him, he'd have given in already pulling her close and doting on her until that sad look on her face melted to the gleeful smile he was used to.
"You broke my trust." He began, "That really hurts my feelings. The first time I give you a little leeway and this is what you do? I'm so disappointed in you."
"I just wanted to see the bird..."
"Why didn't you come ask?"
"Because you would say no! You always say no!"
"I didn't say no to the porch, did I?"
"No...but - "
"I let you do almost anything you want, damn it! The only time I say anything is when it has to do with your safety. So the few rules I have in place I expect to be followed. It's that simple. You're more human than dog, control yourself next time." He was raising his voice again, and he hated the sound of it. His own words rattling in his head and yet they continued to flow like a venomous waterfall.
"It was just the end of the yard. I thought I'd see it up close, then come right back."
"And you got hurt anyway. Look at your hand. That fence was old, dirty, that could get infected. And then what? It's not like I can take you to a regular hospital...." He put his palm over his face, sensing he needed to calm down all over again.
"You're right. I'm sorry. Really I'm sorry, I'm so sorry."
He wish he hadn't looked. Her face contorted and scrunched, red, tears and snot running down her cheeks. His chest tightened, mouth suddenly dry. That wasn't manipulation. No one ugly cried like that if they didn't mean it. It didn't change the fact that the trust he had in her was fractured, but any other negative feelings fizzled out with a pop.
"I believe you." He cooed, reaching forward to wipe some tears away from her face. "I forgive you. "
"I...love you....Leon" The words came between wracked sobs.
"I love you too." He wrapped his arms around her tightly, letting her sob into his shoulder. "It's ok. It's ok," he repeated as he pet her hair. "You just gotta listen from now on, sweetheart. I don't want anything bad to happen to you. I don't want to lose you. It would break my heart."
"I will. I promise."
He wasn't so sure of that. He believed that she believed it though, and that sentiment was enough. He let her finish out her crying session until the delivery driver knocked on the door, tearing them out of the moment.
"Just a minute!" He called out, returning his attention to her. "After I grab the food, we'll get your hand cleaned up, eat, and get some sleep. Tomorrow will be better, alright?"
"Promise?"
"Promise." He cooked his pinky finger around hers, pressing a quick peck to her lips. Her ears pointed up in return, tail lifting to slowly move back and forth. That was his girl.
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
 That strange warmness from earlier was back. A feeling of longing you couldn't quite place tugged at your core while heat made every part of your skin tingle, the bedding sticking to your clammy body. The wedge of moonlight coming in through the window caught your attention, pouring all your focus into eyeing it, trying desperately to ignore the discomfort, and to not wake Leon up. The last thing you needed right now was to have him upset with you all over again.
But whatever was wrong with you had slowly become too much, worsening by the hour.
The floorboards creaked with each step, feet feeling heavy as you tried to pad your way to the bathroom as quietly as you could. Even your lungs felt like you'd run a mile, panting the only way to get enough air without feeling suffocated.
One time, at the lab, you remembered feeling this way. It didn't last long before lady Birkin was stabbing a needle into your arm, frigid liquid cooling you down from within your veins. From that moment on, the shots became regular. They didn't explain what any of it meant, but you never felt that all consuming inferno again -- at least not until now.
Liquid cold. Instant relief.
That's all you craved. That's all you needed. That's all you could think about.
Liquid cold. Instant relief.
Stumbling into the bathroom, you flicked the light on, gripping the sink with your good hand so tightly a part of you was scared you'd crack the porcelain from sheer force of will. Your breath expanded over the mirror, fogging it up each time a heavy breath escaped. "Ok...I got this.....ok...." You told yourself, scuttling over to the tub.
Shower or bath, you mulled over the options quickly trying to make a decision. Leon took cold showers. He told you so, sometimes in the middle of the night, other times in the morning. You'd vaguely wake up to something poking you, and he'd be shuffling out of the bed. 'Shh. Go back to sleep.' He'd coo. 'Just feeling a little hot, 'gon take a cold shower, and I'll be right back.'
Good enough for you. The overhead shower roared to life as you turned the cold knob to max, water pattering loudly against the tub. You didn't even bother to strip, flopping yourself into the basin, clothes and all.
It felt like ice shards clattering against you, steam sizzling off your skin from the sheer difference in temperature. In any other situation, it would've felt miserable, too cold and uncomfortable. But right now, even the stinging pain of the water felt intoxicating compared to just being hot all over. It wasn't as good as the shot from lady Birkin, but it was enough to sooth.
As your body regulated its temperature, the aching sensations became more noticeable now. A pang of something between your legs had you clamping them together instinctively, skin making a slapping noise from the mix of force and wetness.
Your nipples hurt, hardening beneath the water, too rough against the tank top's fabric you had on. You needed to be freed from the clothes, weighing you to the bottom of the tub and sticking to your skin.
The shirt was the first to go, tugging it up and over your head, frustrated as the wet fabric seemed to stretch and stretch before it finally decided to free you of its grasp. The wet shirt hit the door with a smack and a plop, before sliding down onto the tile floor. You hiss when your nipples were exposed to the air, droplets of water making direct contact with the pruning skin. It wasn't as painful as the fabric, but it was definitely more sensitive.
Flattening your palms against your chest, you kneaded at your breasts, hoping warming them up a bit might help. It served its purpose, but each movement, skin rolling against skin made unfamiliar sensations of longing pulse between your legs.
You groaned, squeezing your legs together again. Every time you fixed one issue, another seemed to pop up somewhere else. You just wanted it all to go away.
The boxers were next, discarded next to the tank top. Now you felt weightless where you laid, nude flesh encompassed by the hug of the tub, water splashing down on you like rain. You were sure this is what heaven felt like, until another round of pulsating from your core made you bristle, ruining your moment of peace.
"No more..." you breathed out loud, startling yourself with the unrecognizable tone of your own voice.
You adjusted, one arm snaking its way under your neck for support, the other finding itself between your legs hoping to massage out the sensation if you could, like dealing with any sore muscle. The cold tips of your fingers brushed past something that made you gasp, toes flexing. A cold jolt, a warm tingle.
Tentatively, you brought your fingers back to that spot again, pressing down. It felt good, not quite as good as the first time, but the firm pressure seemed to quell some of the throbbing. You could feel your pulse in your fingers - were they being warmed by whatever was between your legs? Or was the cold of your fingers icing the spot there. You couldn't tell, both sensations melding together.
Why didn't it feel like the first time? Your brows came together, as you thought, eyes slipping closed. Spreading your fingers outward in a V shape, you felt it again, that jolt that made your lower half jump. The little bump, you discovered, was the key to that feeling.
Experimentally, you ran your index and middle finger over it again in a circular motion. A strangled noise worked itself out of your throat, and a muscle you weren't even aware you had tightened. It felt so good, but not enough. A burning pleasure on the outside, a dull thrum of need somewhere deep inside of you.
You wanted more room, spreading your legs as much as the tub would allow before hooking one over the ledge. You could worry about the water running off your foot and onto the floor later.
The water above served only as background noise now, your skin long numbed from the cold, allowing your brain to focus solely on what was happening below.
It felt like something was building up, like every sensation was working towards something, something you couldn't grasp. Frustrated noises echoed through the tiny bathroom, and your arm muscles burned with overexertion. Despite that, the need for something, anything, kept you going, desperately rubbing your fingers over the bundle of nerves in no rhyme or rhythm.
As fast as your body would allow, you pawed at yourself closer and closer until it felt like you were tossed off the edge of a cliff. Every muscle in your body tensed up. You forgot how to breathe. Splotches of white and black lights danced behind your eyelids. The shower was silent against the heartbeat hammering against your eardrums. Fuzzy ears twitched with your pulse, tail sloshing back and forth in the shallow water.
And as quickly as it came, the feeling was gone. So much rubbing, so much effort, so little warmth and too much exhaustion.
You went lax like a rag doll, leg sliding back into the tub, sore arm left where it was, hand still resting flat against your pubic area. When was the last time you felt this relaxed? Tired? Never, probably. Not even having the capacity to reach up to shut the water off, you were fully unconscious within seconds, facial muscles relaxing as the water rained down on you.
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
 Light burned through his eyelids, the familiar feeling of consciousness tugged at his mind. He yawned, rubbing at his eyes. It was rare he didn't have to wake up to an alarm, it felt nice, just getting to lay there for a bit. The lack of warmth and dip in the mattress next to him made him grumble. "Sweetheart?" He reached over, patting around for her and coming up with nothing but the cool sheets beneath his palm.
Panic made him shoot up, eyes barely adjusting to the light as he looked around. The sound of the shower caught his attention. It meant she was home, at least, easing part of his concern. However, she never showered in the morning. Was something wrong?
Leon wiped the crust and sleep from his eyes as he made his way down the upstairs hall to the bathroom. The door wasn't closed all the way, stopped from swinging open by wet fabric bunching beneath it when he tried. "What the?" He knelt so he could move the cloth from the door before swinging it open. He was more confused at first, not seeing her silhouette. In fact, the shower curtain was mostly open, water having misted around the floor. Where the hell was she?
His took a step forward, knees buckling at the sight. He caught the edge of the tub with his hands, pajama pants soaking into the water on the floor. She was in there, unconscious. Her skin blueish in tint, unmoving was the water splashed over her form. He scrambled to shut the water off, almost turning the wrong knob in his panic.
"Come on, wake up." He said, shaking her by the shoulder. Her body wiggled, but she didn't move on her own. "Sweetheart... what did you do?" He looked her over again. Did she fall? But there was no bruising or blood. He lifted her arm, dropping it back on top of her. Nothing. He tried to feel for a pulse, but her skin was too cold to feel anything. Luckily, with the water off, it took only a moment before he heard the telltale sound of her teeth chattering together, even her tail seemed to vibrate as her body shivered involuntarily trying to gain some warmth. He'd have turned the warm water on if not for how pruny and textured her skin already was. She was practically water logged, but alive.
He yanked the towel off the bathroom rack, tossing it over her, helping to get a grip on her torso before pulling her out of the tub, cradling her against himself. He cartoon slid out of the bathroom, water making his feet hydroplane on the finished wood as he rushed you back to the bedroom. He didn't care about the mess, he just needed you to be ok, stuffing your cold body under the comforter, wrapping himself under with you, cocooning you in his body heat.
"Leon?" She blinked, knocking a few beads of water off her plush eyelashes. She was shivering violently. "I'm so cold."
"What the hell happened!?" His words held no malice, he was terrified more than he had the capacity to be angry, rubbing his palm against her back desperate to get some friction going between them.
"Was so hot... just wanted to cool off. Fell asleep...."
"You fell asleep in the shower?"
"Yeah."
"How'd you manage that?"
"So hot, then so sleepy."
He hadn't a clue what the hell she was talking about, but he was glad she was alive. He made a mental note to add a rule now that she wasn't allowed to use the shower without him from now on. In fact, he was already brainstorming a whole new set of rules and restrictions.
Every day, it seemed like she was tempting to pull herself away from him in one way or another. If it wasn't the way he could see her face tense when he was being overly affectionate. The way she complained and pushed boundaries. But this? God, he couldn't trust her to do anything anymore, could he?
His precious puppydoll, what was the matter with her? He peppered her forehead with kisses, ignoring his own shivering as the cold passed between them. She curled herself into him, his only focus was getting her comfortable and warmed up. He just couldn't understand her.
He wasn't sure how long the two of them had been laying there when she finally stopped shivering, falling back into sleep. Her breathing even, the sun through the window warm against the now soiled blankets. Leon couldn't find it within himself to do the same. He was wide awake, thinking about what to do. Watching her puppy ears twitch every now again, idly running his fingers through her now drying hair.
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
You couldn't remember sleeping like that before, so exhausted, the world was gone. Dreamless. Vaguely, there was the memory of feeling so cold that your bones ached. Even when your eyes cracked open, part of your face felt numb - still you were nude, half wrapped in a towel and curled under the blanket.
'When did I come back to bed?' You thought to yourself, pawing at your eyes to get the crust and goopy feeling to go away. Despite the memory of freezing, the only thing you felt again was hot. Pure heat all over again.
"Good morning." Leon's voice caught your attention, his hands gently stroking your ears.
"Morning." You said, still groggy, a squeaky yawn leaving you as your eyes adjusted to the world. As if the warmth wasn't bad enough, everything felt off, the man laying in front of you just seemed so much more than he normally was. Leon's face was smooth, skin vibrant with life. You were hyper aware of the warmth on his cheeks, the cool undertones that cast the shadows of his features. His blue eyes were so opaque they could've been painted on stained-glass.
"Are you ok?" He asked, his large hand cupping your cheek. "Your pupils are dilated."
You had no clue what that meant, but you had this overwhelming instinct to press yourself to him, and you did. Nose nestled firmly into the crook of his neck, taking in a deep inhale. Had he always smelled this good? You whined, fisting his shirt to anchor yourself to him, tail drumming behind you in a desperate attempt to ground yourself from the stimuli. His scent was so intense, it was hypnotizing, and you craved more of him. Your tongue reached out to lap at the junction between his neck and collar bone, tasting his skin. That new but familiar aching between your legs was back with a vengeance. You wormed your hand down between your legs attempting to stave off the feeling, when Leon's hands met your shoulders to push you away from him slightly.
"What are you doing?" His face was tinged with a bright blush you hadn't seen before on him. Was he embarrassed by something? You weren't sure why, he looked so perfect right now. "H-hey now." He said, pressing you away from him, a firm grip on both your shoulders.
"Leoonnnn..." You whined his name, squirming to get back to him. When he wasn't budging, face still etched in confusion, a low growl began to bubble from the back of your throat, fangs bearing at him from frustration.
"What the hell's gotten into you? Are you seriously growling at me?" He kept his hold on you firm, giving a light squeeze to your shoulders. His face morphed into something you couldn't fully read, a cross between what you presumed to be anger and something else. Unable to articulate your need for him, the heat you were feeling - the growling didn't ease up. You struggled in his grasp, snapping and snarling, pawing at his arms as best you could with the awkward angle.
"Bad girl!" He snapped, voice loud and sharp. He rolled you over, pinning you down against the mattress, using his body weight to keep you there, his face level above yours. The surprise movement coupled with chiding made you halt for a moment. With his face so close to yours, there was no reason for you to remain so upset, instead you happily peppered his face with kissing, running your nose against his jaw again to take in his scent. A contented mewl dug it's way out of you.
"Leon, please." Tail wagging between your legs, you tried so hard to get him to understand. "Too hot. Everything's s'hot. Make it better?" You ground your hips upwards against him a few times. Something hard poked against your thigh as you did it, but Leon didn't move immediately.
When he finally did move, he was peeling himself away from you. "What the fuck?" He asked aloud to no one in particular.
"Leon!" You demanded, reaching your hands out to grab at him. He dodged them easily, slipping off the mattress, staring down at you. "It hurts, it's too hot. Leon, please." The room felt like it was teetering, you were so wound up, you wanted to cry, scream, throw yourself onto the floor. Anything to help cope with the overstimulation of everything going on. Even the silence was too much, aiding in your ability to hear both your heartbeats pounding in your head. The heat, smell, the visuals.
Flopping forwards onto the bed, you buried your face in the blanket, inhaling his scent again. The corner of his pillow had caught against the spot between your legs from the movement. It was dull, but you felt it. That same pleasurable feeling from the night before. With a soft groan, you bore down again, grinding your hips onto the bed to try and get more of that pressure, anything to quell that ache.
Leon still hadn't said anything, but you were too driven by instinct to even care. The blanket blocking your vision, his scent mixed with laundry detergent sating your olfactory, all you could focus on was rocking your hips against the pillow letting that pressure build up again.
"I get it now..." He finally piped up, kneeling down and patting your shoulder.
Panting, you lifted your head to look at him. "H-help me?"
"I can't, at least not how you need." He brushed some of the hair that had clung to your face from sweat away. Again his expression was unreadable, and you hated it. You didn't understand, all you wanted was to feel normal again. For the heat and ache to go away.
Tears clung to your lash line, unable to cope any more as your hips picked up speeding, rutting desperately against the pillow. Leon drew his hand back as he stood again. He did a strange shuffle messing with his pants, before quickly exiting the room. You reached out for him, wanting to call him back to you, beg him not to go, but the door slammed closed behind him. Unable to do anything else, you squeezed your eyes shut, flopping there until a few more movements of your hips had that same pleasurable feeling washing over you again.
Sighing in relief, you just laid there, bringing the blanket back to your nose to inhale it.
Ëâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËâĄïžËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄËââ§âșËËâĄïžËËâșâ§âËâĄËââ§âșË
The moment the door slammed behind him, Leon bound down the stairs, skipping half the steps. He needed to distance himself, clear his head. Her erratic behavior had thrown him a loop that he could hardly process. The way she was begging for him, clinging to him, fucking herself against his pillow - all within a few minutes of waking up. It was enough to make his pajama pants tent painfully.
What he wouldn't give to let you pepper his face in more of those kisses while he railed you into the mattress. She shivered at the thought, pushing it to the outskirts of his consciousness to try and calm down. His palms felt sweaty, and his heart was hammering a mile a minute.
He couldn't do that to you. It wouldn't be right. It wouldn't be fair. You were in heat...at least he thought so. Not in your right mind. But even if you were in your right mind, he still hadn't concluded what exactly your relationship was. Were you even aware enough to consent to anything more than kisses?
He didn't know. And he wished he didn't care enough to know, wanting to give in to his baser instincts.
For now, he was stuck sitting on the floor in front of the couch, catching his breath. He leaned back, letting his head fall onto the cushion. "Fuck." He palmed himself through the cottony fabric of his pajama pants to ease his own tension. He couldn't get the image of her out of his head, every time he blinked he saw her dilated pupils, that lovesick longing. Leon's had girlfriends before, not many, but he's had them, and he's sure not one of them ever looked at him like that. There was never a connection he'd felt with someone so intense before, like she would die without him. Maybe she would.
She would.
She would.
He was sure of that fact, especially after last night.
He wiped the sweat from his brow with the back of his hand. 'She does need me, I know that.' He confirmed to himself. 'God.' He let out a few deep breaths, removing his hand from his crotch, allowing his erection to deflate. It was just one more thing to add to the list of everything else he was dealing with.
Her behavior. Her desire to keep pushing his boundaries. Her erratic behavior the night before. Now this.
He listened to see if he could hear her. Luckily, there was nothing but silence from the upstairs bedroom. She'd likely fallen back asleep, giving him even more time to process things. In all his 21 years of life, he was sure he had never faced a challenge like this one before, but he was never one to give up or back down. His puppydoll needed him, and he was going to figure things out, even if it was the death of him. He owed her that, he owed himself that.
"I could call Chris, maybe..." He mumbled to himself, looking to the landline. Something about the idea of Chris knowing she was in heat, even imagining what she was looking like right now didn't set right with him. Leon wasn't a jealous person by nature, but somehow a phantom jealousy shut that idea down. No, she needed him not anyone else right now.
"Think, think." He chided himself, cupping his temples with his hands. Did he go back upstairs to her? Comfort her in the short term? Did he leave her there? Longterm?
He slicked his hair out of his face, emptying his head of all thoughts for a moment. "If she's in heat then she must have other instincts right? She's fertile, and she'll want to nest and...mating makes animals closer right?" He mused out loud, then it occurred to him. This situation was the solution, not another problem.
"No, that's messed up... I shouldn't even be thinking about..." But he was, the image of her swollen and gravid with a baby, his baby flashed before his eyes. She'd be so needy, tired. So focused on what her body was meant to do, she wouldn't need to try and get into any more trouble.
It was tempting. So very tempting.
It would solve her problem of being bored too, with a baby to focus on, take care of. She wouldn't have to be lonely while he was away.
The more he thought of it, the more appealing it was becoming. His cock was filling out again, twitching each time he pictured it. He had a solid job, a house, two things most people his age didn't. He could do it. Really.
By the time the wet spot formed on his pajamas, any moral argument against the plan had disappeared by the need to get his rocks off, to fuck a baby into her. He was convinced that this was the perfect solution in totality.
His legs were a little shaky as he stumbled to his feet, every step of the stairs felt like running through sand. Electricity skipped through his nerves, leaving him tweaking like a livewire. The door creaked open slowly, and he poked his head back in.
She hadn't moved from her spot, face down on top of the covers. One of her ears twitched, before pointing up in his direction. "H-hey."
Her head lifted just enough to look at him, her eyes glossy and dilated still. The sheen of sweat that made her skin glisten was enough of an indicator that she was still hot all over. "Are you mad at me?"
That shattered him, truly. "No, no sweetheart, I'm not mad. I was just...surprised." He coaxed her to sit up, taking his own spot next to her. "I'm sorry for responding that way. Are you still feeling uncomfortable?"
She nodded, "Yeah. Not like because, but everything is still so hot."
"Is that...is that why you took a cold shower last night?"
"Just wanted it to stop."
He nodded, "I understand. You had me so worried though, you can get really sick if you stay cold too long."
"I'm sorry."
"Don't be." He said, pecking her on the cheek. "I'm sorry you're feeling so unwell. I think I can help you now though. Would you like that?"
"But I thought you said - "
"Nevermind what I said before. I was being stupid." The look she was giving him now nearly sent him into cardiac arrest, that sweet pleading face begging for him to devour her. "I promise, I'll make it all better, ok?"
"Really?"
He smiled, reaching down to lock his pinky around hers. "I promise. I'll make it all better, just trust me."
She nodded, and he took the opportunity to lean forward and capture her lips with his own, unlike the ferris wheel or any other time, he tried his best to convey his own need. He groaned into her mouth, tongue sweeping against her bottom lip before slipping it into her mouth the moment her lips parted. He slid it along hers, nearly whining himself as he pressed her back down onto the bed, grinding his tented and leaking cock down against her a few times, his pants soaking with her own juices.
"You're so pretty. So perfect. My pretty perfect puppydoll. " He cooed, pulling away just enough to kiss her jaw, then her neck. "I've never met anyone like you before. I've never wanted anyone as much as you before." He admitted, swirling his tongue over one of her nipples.
"Leon!" She gasped, squirming beneath him. He pressed himself down onto her more to keep her still before popping off to latch on to her other breast. He ran his thumb over the perked up one, smearing his own saliva across it as he worked the current one with his mouth. He could feel her thighs twitching from the stimulation, he could only imagine how her poor pussy was feeling. Her skin was feverish, sticky. He loved it, it felt so primal.
"Don't worry sweetheart." He leaned back to give her a moment to catch her breath, seizing the chance to spread her legs. He groaned at the sight of her slick folds, her hole twitching and closing over nothing. Prettiest pussy he'd ever seen, he ever would see, he was sure of it. Leon made a mental note to devour her next time, make her squirm and scream on his tongue until she was pulling his hair out - see how many noises he could get her to make. The thought alone almost made him cum, and he had to take a deep breath to refocus.
There was a task at hand, and his own need was starting to become painful. He tugged his pants and boxers down just enough to free his cock and balls, letting his shaft slap against his abdomen. He hissed at the feeling of the air, relief washing over him from the lack of restriction.
With one hand he squeezed the base of his shaft, holding the pressure there before stroking himself slowly, as slow as he could without torturing himself. With his free hand he slipped two fingers into her folds, running them up and down, coating them in her slick.
"This might feel a little weird, just trust me, ok?" He warned.
"I trust you." She whispered, barely louder than a mouse.
"Good girl." He heard her tail hit the bed, wagging from the praise. 'Fuck, she's too cute.'Â He pressed his fingers into her slowly, she was so tight, so wet. He could only imagine the way she'd feel finally wrapped around him. He pressed his thumb against her clit circling it gently, leaving the inserted fingers still. "Are you alright?"
"Y-yeah. Feels good."
"Good." He nodded, beginning to move his fingers in and out of her slowly. "If it hurts, tell me, alright?" He picked up speed, switching from thrusting to spreading his fingers within her, feeling the resistance of her walls contracting from the movements. Her slick covered the palm of his hand, and he refocused his thumb back to her clit.
She made a noise, he wasn't entirely sure if it was agreement or not, but the look on her face was enough to tell him she was enjoying herself. He continued to finger her, entranced by the small squeaks she made, the way her facial muscles twitched with each new sensation. The sun hit her face at just the right angle, illuminating her features like an angel.
She was an angel.
God he loved her so much, it hurt.
He pulled his hand out, chuckling at the needy whine she let out. "Don't worry, just give me a sec." He wiped the slick from his hand all over his tip and shaft, making sure it was good and wet before leaning over her again. Pressing the mushroomy head against her entrance, he kissed her one more time. "I love you." He mumbled against her lips.
"Love you t-"
She was cut off when he sunk himself inside of her. He was careful, slow, whimpering at how constricting she was. It was euphoric nearly, how her walls squeezed against every inch of him, sucking him into her. Her eyes were wide, mouth parted the moment he gave a shallow thrust.
"So good. So good for me baby." He cooed, resting both elbows beside her head, lazily grinding into her. "Never had someone so perfect before."
"L-leon... so full...what's happening....?"
"I'm making you allllllll better." He said, sloppily kissing her jaw a few times. "Just like I promised." He enjoyed the closeness, the intimacy of laying atop her like this, slow, soft. "Gotta take care of my puppydoll."
She squeezed her eyes shut, relaxing against the pillow, soft whines escaping her with every movement he made. Now that she was more placid, and he was able to sink himself fully into her. The feeling was indescribable. He was on cloud nine balls deep inside of her.
"Such a good girl. Good, good girl." He chanted, pulling back just enough to pull her legs up to her chest, so he had a better angle to bear down into her. She wrapped her arms around him, latching her nails into his back, red crescent shaped marks left over every time she dragged them against his skin. Her nose buried in his neck as she clung to him, whimpering and whining.
The sound of his name falling from her lips, mumbled into his skin like a prayer, coupled with the squeezing of her walls around him, was enough to make him lose it. He felt his balls tighten the moment she came, nearly crying as he gripped her hips bruisingly, slamming the head of his cock as deep as he could. He held himself like that as he shot his load. "F-fuck." He groaned, squeezing his own eyes shut before shallowly thrusting again, riding out the hot waves of pleasure that overcame him.
He caught his breath, kissing her forehead a few times. He wasn't ready to pull out, even when he felt himself going soft. Instead, he propped himself above her a little longer before daring to crack his eyes open. She looked half asleep, peaceful beneath him. "How are you feeling?"
"Tired....good."
"I'm glad, baby. Still hot?"
"Not like before... Am I fixed now?"
"I think so, we might have to do this a few more times. But you'll feel better and better each time." He assured.
She nodded, yawning. He could see her eyelids growing heavy again, fighting off the impending sleep. "Poor thing, you should get some sleep."
"Slept a lot, don't wanna."
"You need it." He slowly pulled out of her, rolling off to the side so he could hold her close. He flattened his palm against her belly, imagining the future again, what it would feel like a few months from now. "Take a nap, I'll lay with you. I'll even take you on a walk later. "
"Really?"
"Really." He pulled the blanket back over the two of them. "I promise." She nestled herself into his side, hooking her pinky around his. She didn't say anything further, closing her eyes and sinking into unconsciousness next to him.
#Leon Kennedy#Leon Kennedy x Reader#Leon Kennedy x You#Leon Kennedy X Y/N#Resident Evil#Resident Evil 2#Resident Evil 2 Remake#Resident Evil Leon#Resident Evil 2 Leon#RE2R#RE2R Leon#RE2#yandere!leon kennedy#yandere leon#Yandere Leon kennedy#resident evil x reader#resident evil imagines#resident evil fanfiction#oneshot#Leon Kennedy imagines#Leon Kennedy smut#resident evil smut#hybrid!reader#hybrid reader#fem!reader
3K notes
·
View notes
Note
Hello dear! How are you? Could you please do Perv! Chrollo if it's not too much trouble? I haven't seen much Perv Chrollo content out there, and I'd love to see that in your writing! You can ignore it if you want, have a nice day ⥠(Sorry if it seemed confusing, English is not my first language â ïž)
His pretty girl
Perv!Chrollo x Fem!Reader
warnings: perv behavior, panting stealing, reader is mentioned to be chubby, excessive gift giving, somno, dubcon, reader is innocent and naive, breeding kink, pregnancy, bit of Yandere chrollo if you squint, Chrollo calls you princess/angel/goddess, minor manga spoilers about Shalnark
A/N: not the biggest chrollo fan but him being head over heels in love and just a big softy with his lover does do something for me.
NSFW: @lightshowerrr @jungtoast @nenggie @pannacottababy @aliceattheart @atransmuter
âŒïžIf you want to be added to the taglist, please check out the taglist information then comment what you want to be added to! Make sure you have your age in your bio and that your blog can be tagged/mentioned!âŒïž
Unlike most pervs, Chrollo is much sneakier with his perversion. You wonât catch him sniffing your panties or jacking off to pictures of your cute face⊠but you will find pairs of your panties covered in his cum in your dresser, and lots of pictures of you saved on his phone if you go looking.
Chrollo absolutely adores you, he enjoys seeing you blush and stutter when you find a particularly nasty love letter stuffed into your mailbox, or those pair of missing lacy panties folded neatly on your bed, with strange stains on them.
He first fell for you when Shalnark introduced him to you. You met Shal through the Hunter exam years ago, though you didnât pass. Regardless, the two of you stayed good friends, with Shal making sure you stayed safe while under his care.
But Shalnark was quick to back off the second Chrollo showed interest in you. You were just too cute, with your chubby frame and pretty face. Chrollo had never really put much thought into his sexual preferences, but seeing your plump ass and fat tits was enough to awaken something⊠sinful in him.
After that first meeting, you started receiving little gifts from him. At first, they were just pretty trinkets that Chrollo found on his missions, but as his obsession and adoration for you grew, those little trinkets because expensive dresses and luxurious jewelry.
At first you thought it was just him being generous with you, considering your living situation wasnât the best. You were very appreciative, your cheeks heating up and your voice small when he smiled sweetly after you thanked him.
But over time, strange things started happening that you just couldnât explain!
Your windows would be open in the morning when you were sure you closed them last night⊠and what was that sticky stuff on your face?
Chrollo had gotten into the habit of breaking in to watch you sleep. In the beginning, it was because he felt such intense love and care for you that he just couldnât bear the thought of you getting harmed in your most vulnerable state!
Heâd sit at the edge of your bed, reading a book while gently stroking your cheek. It was cute, you seemed so content and happy in your sleep when he was with you. It made his heart soar thinking that maybe, just maybe he had something to do with it.
But soon those soft and innocent intentions shifted when he noticed how⊠revealing your pajamas were sometimes. Those flimsy little shorts and the fact he could see your nipples through your thin white tanktop had his cock straining against his pants.
You always looked so soft and peaceful, something he wanted to protect and cherish. You were the only person linking him to the normal world, where your biggest problems were paying rent on time and figuring out what to eat for dinner, while his were trying to keep his friends from dying and which heist he should plan next.
You lived in a completely different world than him, and that was some of the appeal. Chrollo had never lived a normal life, but with you, he could have some shred of normalcy. He could marry you, make you his sweet little wife and live out the rest of his days keeping you happy and safe.
But⊠deep down Chrollo knew this was next to impossible. He was a wanted criminal, with more enemies than he could care to remember.
He still liked to imagine it, though. You, sitting in a rocking chair your swollen belly, carrying his child. Heâd come home from a heist, carry you upstairs and ravish you, making sure to be extra careful with your delicate body.
Chrollo stroked his cock to this thought, his tip gently pressed against your lips as you slept. Heâd done this exact things countless times⊠he hadnât been expecting you to wake up right as he buckled his pants after cumming on your lips.
â⊠Chrollo?â
You rubbed your sleepy eyes, then wiped at your mouth, grimacing. Did you drool in your sleep? It was too dark to make out what was on your hand⊠but there was just enough light to see your friend Chrollo standing there, peering down at you with a slightly surprised expression.
He quickly took on his usual calm, charming facade. âHello, (Name). Shal asked me to come watch over you. Apparently thereâs been a few break ins in town that got both him and I worried for you.â
It was all lies, but something he loved about (Name) was her naĂŻvetĂ©. You smiled sweetly, your cheeks heating up. âReally? You came to make sure I was okay?â
Chrollo nodded, setting his book on your nightstand before sitting at the edge of your bed. âOf course⊠I donât think you understand just how much you mean to me, (Name).â
You didnât have time to react, he was already leaning closer to you. His eyes were captivating in the moonlight, reflecting the light and shining like jewels.
âYouâre divine, (Name), like an angel sent from Heaven just for me.â
He cupped your cheek, his thumb brushing against your lip. âI want you, more than anything.â
Hearing this from a handsome man like Chrollo felt unreal. He wanted you of all people? It was hard to believe.
As if sensing your hesitancy, Chrollo tilted up your chin. âDo you want me to show you?â
Before you could answer, his lips met yours. He had been holding back for so long, he needed this, he needed you. You were always so sweet to him, making sure he was eating well and even coming to visit him when you could. How could he ever ask for anything more than you?
It wasnât long before his tongue entered your mouth and his hands slipped under your shirt to grab at your perky, plump tits. You whines softly into his mouth as his thumbs ran over your sensitive nipples.
âLike that, princess?â
He gave them a soft pinch, biting down on your lip as he moved one hand to your shorts. He didnât both with taking them off, he ripped them and pinned you down, one hand pinning your wrists and the other unbuckling his pants.
âMy darlingâŠâ
His eyes settled on your pretty cunt, wet and glistening in the moonlight. Chrollo had a few one nights stands in the past, but he never felt like this before. Your pussy, all wet and ready for him was enough to have him groaning into your neck as his cock sunk into your warm heat.
He grabbed onto your hips, his fingers sinking into the soft fat. You were so cute, tears pooling down your cheeks as you blubbered incoherently, too fucked out to speak. He leaned forward and kissed those soft lips of yours, so soft and gentle with his little angel.
âShh, just take me okay? Fuck, youâre divine, my angel, my goddessâŠâ
With one leg over his shoulder as he pressed your bodies together, Chrollo fucked into you. He tried his best to restrain himself, but god you looked way too pretty when you came around his cock for the third time.
You clung to him for comfort and some sort of stability as he mercilessly pounded your sensitive cunt. âPretty, god youâre just gorgeous, my sweet girlâŠâ
By the end of the night, you were too exhausted to even speak, your pussy full of his seed. He held you now, cooing softly as he peppered kisses along your cheeks and jaw. âDid so well, such a good girlâŠâ
From then on Chrolloâs obsession with you would only deepen. Heâd marked you up, leaving love bites all over your neck and chest. You were his, and heâd make sure everyone knew that.
It wasnât long before he had moved you away, somewhere you could be together and also under the radar. After Shalnarkâs death, he became a bit paranoid that Hisoka would come after you next.
So now there you were, belly swollen with his child as he held you in his lap, his palm resting on your baby bump.
Chrollo had you, and although it wasnât quite the life he had expected, he was still happy with it. You were here with him, carrying his baby and unable to get a way, even if you wanted to.
And that was enough for him.
#chrollo imagine#chrollo fic#chrollo fanfic#chrollo x reader smut#chrollo x you#chrollo x y/n#chrollo x reader#chrollo smut#requests open#x reader#anime x reader#reader insert#hxh x reader#hxh imagines#smut requests#hunter x hunter x reader#anime x chubby reader#chubby!reader#chubby reader#fem!reader#female reader#fem reader#yandere chrollo#smut fanfiction#smut fic#x reader smut#yandere smut#hxh smut
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
Male Companions Responding To Your Pregnancy Announcement
Here are some headcannons I have for the Male Companions + Zevlor responding to your's/Tav's pregnancy announcement. I have a few more ideas I want to write out for the week so we will see how that goes.
Wyll
Legit might start crying when you tell him youâre expecting.
He smiles so big and bright before scooping you up in his arms and spinning you in a circle.
He is (carefully) rubbing his face against your stomach and whispering to the little baby bump.
He will not let you do anything on your own once you have the smallest of bumps.
He understands you donât need his help, but he will offer it no matter what.
Once you get later on in your pregnancy, he is constantly rubbing your belly and telling them stories of his adventures as the Blade of Frontiers.
Once you get close to your due date, he will not leave your side cause he doesnât want to miss anything.
He is there to hold your hand and help you anyway he can when you go into labor. Whispering how well youâre doing and that you are almost there.
Once the baby is there and in his arms, he melts. He doesnât want to let them go.
Seeing you holding the little baby is his favorite thing.
âOh darling. You have done so wonderfully.â Looking down at the little child, his child, wrapped in blankets and sleeping peacefully in his arms. âYou have given me everything I could ever hope for.â
Astarion
He has heightened senses due to being a vampire so he can smell something different about you long before you tell him, but he doesnât know what it up.
He thinks youâre playing some sick joke when you first tell him youâre expecting.
He just canât wrap his head around it at first, but you wake up to his hands on your belly and whispering softly.
He comes around to the idea of you both having a child slowly but once he does, he is making sure you have the best healers available.
He even asks Shadowheart and Halsin to check on you and make sure everything is going well.
He becomes obsessed with your belly as it gets bigger, wanting to constantly be touching you in some way.
When he feels the first kick, he is startled but you see the largest grin on his face.
âOh, a little fighter on our hands it seems.â
When you go into labor, he is afraid but he sits behind you and lets you push against him.
He is whispering into your ear how wonderful you are doing and letting you squeeze his hand.
Once he hears the baby cry for the first time, he has an out of body experience.
He is looking over your shoulder at the little one as they are placed in your arms, with you cooing down at them.
âLover⊠They look perfect.â Reaching around you and letting them grab hold of his finger with his tiny hand. âI swear, I will always be there for them.â
Gale
He stares at you for a moment with wide eyes when you tell him before breaking out in a smile and scooping you into his arms.
He will want to announce to all your companions as soon as possible. He wants to share your good news with everyone.
He starts planning everything; the nursery, what colors everything should be, what foods he is going to be cooking for you through the pregnancy, everything you can think of.
Not to mention Tara is your little shadow and youâre pretty sure that she is reporting everything back to Gale.
He checks up on you multiple times a day, asking if you need anything or if you are craving everything for him to cook.
When you are laying in bed with him, he will be reading next to you and absently rubbing your belly.
When your belly gets bigger, he will want to have his arms wrapped around you while sleep with Tara curled up next to you.
He wants to be there when you give birth, he will not hear anything against it.
When you do go into labor, he is right by your side and wiping your forehead with a wet towel.
He honestly gets in the way of the midwife with his constant questions, but they force him to sit next to you.
When the baby is finally born, he wants to be the first to hold them and cradle them in his arms.
âOh dearest, look at them. Look at how perfect you have done.â His soft smile and a twinkle in his eyes as he looked down at the child, wanting nothing more in the world.
Halsin
Halsin knows before you do that youâre pregnant. He picks up on the nausea, the tiredness, and he can smell it on you.
He waits for you to tell him though, giving you the privacy even though he is bursting at the seams with excitement.
He is making sure youâre eating enough and getting enough rest.
You wouldnât even need to list a single finger if you didnât want to.
He makes sure not to be too far from you if you would ever need him.
He starts whittling little toys for the child, including a little bear for them.
When your belly gets larger and you start complaining of back pain, he will come up behind you and put his hands under your belly to help relieve the pressure with his chin resting on your shoulder.
From the moment you two lay down for the night he is constantly talking to your belly and rubbing it.
The first time he feels a kick he will grin and give the spot a soft kiss.
He makes sure to keep an eye on everything for anything that could go wrong but he is not against you having additional healers to check up on you.
When you go into labor, he wants to help the midwife with anything they need; water, towels, just about anything.
He also wants to be the one who cuts the cord and clean the baby right after they are born.
He holds them in his arms and marvels at how small they are compared to him before he hands them to you.
âMy Heart, just look at them.â Halsin looking down at the child, slowly running his finger down their cheek as they sleep. âJust look at what we have made together.â
Bonus: Zevlor (because I love him and no one can stop me)
When you tell him the poor manâs heart stops for a second.
He is a stuttering mess, hands reaching for you trembling, but he pulls you into his arms and holds you close kissing you.
A million and one doubts that he will be a good father go through his head, but he doesnât doubt for a second that you will be a good parent.
You have to reassure him and give him a lot of love.
He goes out of his way to make sure youâre taken care of during your pregnancy.
You mention you want a snack or sweet? He will come home with like 10 of them.
You will wake up to him rubbing your belly as it gets bigger.
He eyes will be full of love and wonder when he feels them kick.
When you go into labor, he just canât stand seeing you in pain and gets kicked out by the midwife.
But the moment he hears the first cry he will burst back into the room.
When the midwife hands the baby to him for the first time, he treats them as if they are made of glass.
âOh sweetling.â Zevlor could feel tears pricking the corners of his eyes, blurring his vision as he held the newborn close to his chest watching them yawn. âYou have given me everything.â
#bg3#bg3 x reader#bg3 x tav#bg3 x you#wyll x reader#wyll x tav#gale x reader#gale x tav#astarion x reader#astarion x tav#halsin x reader#halsin x tav#tav x zevlor#zevlor x reader#pregancy
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
Not Strong Enough
Summary: Rule number 1 of being best friends with a vampire. Never let them drink your blood.
an: I HEAR YOU ALL YELLING AT ME IM SORRY!! This took entirely too long to get to you guys, but itâs here now! Better late than never right?? Is this heavily inspired by twilight? Yes. Did I use a BoyGenius song as the title? Itâs lesbian smut, obviously. Is Ellie going to be a brooding depressed vampire? Oh hell yeah. I hope you all like this! Iâm a slut for anything supernatural so this was obvi very fun for me to write. As always, love you all so so much! Thanks for reading đ€
Warnings: SMUT!!, MDNI!!, scissoring (if ur mad Iâm doing another scissoring ficâŠ.idk what to tell you itâs hot), messy kissing, Ellie bites reader (outside of blood sucking), mentions of marking, mentions of bruises, mentions of blood, Ellie is kind of insufferable for a small bit but I promise it gets better, please lmk if I missed anything!
Read part 1 here!!
Ellie knew it was a bad idea from the very beginning.
She knew that she was too weak for you, even outside of sucking your blood. You were too fucking good for her, too much of a dream for Ellie to go and fuck up like she did.
Truth be told, Ellie expected all of it. She expected to get utterly addicted to you, she expected the blurred lines of your relationship to become even more blurred when she began sucking you dry of your life source, she even expected herself to lose control when she was in the act, humping and grinding your soft body like a wild fucking animal as if she had no control over herself.
She expected all of it, every single aspect that came with the territory, she knew was coming.
But the hardest part of it all? Was leaving you completely.
Because she knew the moment she felt herself lose control while she was on top of you that night in your apartment, she knew she needed to leave you. She needed to abandon you and your friendship for the greater good, for your sake.
Ellie knew that she wasnât good for you, and you werenât good for her. But that didnât make the pain of not seeing you any less.
She thought sheâd be able to do it at first, but the texts from you only reminded her of how much she loved your company, how obsessed she was with simply being around you.
She wound frown every time her phone went off, a low groan leaving her lips when she lifted it up to look at her screen, only to see it was from you.
Ellieeeeee
Where are you?
Havenât seen u in the longest :((
Ellie can practically hear your pout in the way you text her. She knows you too well, and she knows that you arenât handling her sudden disappearance well.
At this point, itâs been about two months since Ellie has seen you last? Maybe three? She stopped keeping count because it was driving her insane. It wasnât even the blood supply that she missed, Ellie would go hungry ten times over, dying from starvation if it meant she could be around you without feeling she was robbing you of your life, ruining things that you were meant to experience because she was too fucking selfish.
Ellie misses you, and it pains her that she hasnât been able to have you in so long.
WellâŠnot entirely at least. She knew sheâd lose her mind entirely if she couldnât at least be around you for a few moments, so her usual nighttime visits become a bit more frequent when she decides she canât be around you anymore. Sheâs a lot more careful when she does it though, knowing how sensitive you were to her presence. It was almost unbelievable how easily youâd woken up to her in your room in the past. She doesnât know how sheâd explain things if you woke up now, not having seen her in so long. So sheâs extra aware of how much noise she makes.
Seeing you sleep is almost enough to keep Ellieâs demons at bay, the ones that screamed for you, yearned for you to be by her side, to have your warm skin pressed against her much colder one.
As per usual, sheâs scaling up the brick wall of your apartment building, making her way up to your bedroom like thief in the night. You continue to leave your window open every night, and it breaks Ellieâs heart because she knows youâre doing it for her, most likely hoping she slips into your window as she usually does.
It means Ellie needs to be even more careful than she anticipated.
She doesnât even dare to sit on your bed, standing in the corner of your room as she watches your chest rise and fall. She doesnât even breathe, scared that the sound of it will wake you.
And she desperately wants to reach out and let her fingers run along your soft skin, desperate for the feeling that you always brought her when youâre near. It makes her fists balk at her sides as she practically itches to feel you, fighting back any and every thought that she had to touch you, if even for a moment.
But she doesnât. Instead, he stays with you just before the sun rises. She knows itâs risky, and she knows she shouldnât do it in the event that you wake up and see her. Even if sheâs fast enough to dart out of your room before you can even call her name or turn the lights on, youâre too smart for that. Youâd know what was happening before she can even begin to gaslight you into thinking it was simply a dream.
She canât help herself, not when it comes to you. Seeing you sleep satisfies the burning feeling in her chest, the one that yearns so desperately for you, itâs enough to make her knees weak. Itâs almost like youâre capable of evoking the same feelings she had when she was a human, when she was weak and stupid and felt nervous around women. Until you showed up, Ellie hadnât experienced those feelings in a long time, sheâd almost forgotten about them.
You always remind her though.
Like when sheâs about to leave you, knowing sheâs cutting it too close to the time youâre going to wake up and start your day. Her footsteps are practically silence, even against the old, creaky floorboards of your apartment.
Sheâs almost out of your window, one leg outside as she plants her foot against the fire escape when she hears it. You began mumbling in your sleep, tossing a bit, clearly bothered by whatever dream you were having. While this shouldâve been the clearest sign for Ellie to leave as quickly as possible before your eyes opened a bit to see her, she doesnât. Instead, she stays sat on your window sill, simply watching as you turn to face her, eyes still closed as you pout in your sleep.
If Ellie had a heart that was still beating, sheâs sure it wouldâve stopped. Because suddenly your mumbling is just clear enough for her to hear.
âEllieâŠ.â You sigh out softly, barely loud enough for the undead girl to hear, but she does. Regardless of the city waking up below her, or the sound of your ceiling fan creaking about, she hears it. It makes her frown deeply, swallowing back the intense whimper that threatens to escape and echo throughout your room.
She isnât sure if sheâs ever left your room so quickly, the girls eyes going wide as she made the familiar path down the side of your building to your side walk.
Even when she got home that night, the vampire practically breaking the front door down of her apartment to get in, she couldnât get the sound of your voice uttering her name so sweetly, calling out for her even in the depths of sleep that you were in, tugged so deeply by your dreams, you were still calling out for her.
Ellie knew that night, that she had to stay away from her. For both your sake, and her own.
And sheâs right, because you were suffering just as much as Ellie was.
Ellieâs presence was always scarce, and while it bothered you a bit before you learned what she was, it made sense. She was a creature of the night, something that seemingly only existed in storybooks, coming to life and living the strange lifestyle that she did.
But you knew immediately that this was different.
The morning after you saw Ellie last left a bitter taste in your mouth. As you woke up that morning, your neck sore with the bruises of Ellieâs lips on your skin, body far too drained and tired even after a night of a sleep that was just a bit too deep. It was similar to almost all the times Ellie had drank from you the night prior.
So, why did you feel so bad that morning?
You knew that you didnât owe Ellie anything, that you were the one to suggest this in the first place, so there truly wasnât any room for you to be upset for reasons unknown. What were you even supposed to say to her? That you had a weird feeling? One that you desperately wanted her to relieve by telling you it was all okay?
As much as you wanted to, you knew things between you and Ellie werenât like that.
You were her friend. You were just her friend, and as much as you wanted more, you knew deep down that if Ellie truly wanted you that way, she wouldâve made you sheâs a long time ago.
And maybe thatâs what bothers you the most when this little dry spell occurs, because the sudden lack of her presence leaves you entirely too much time to dwell on things, wondering what it was that you did wrong, what you could have possibly said to create this sudden rift between the two of you.
Ellie had always been flirtatious, flashing that pretty smile in your direction that made you weak in the knees, calling you sweet names that made your heart beat faster. She was practically dangling it all right in front of your face, the frequent touches, the late night visits at the foot of your bed, all this time when you have her the benefit of the doubt, chalking it all up to her simply wanting to see you and nothing more than that, suddenly made no sense to you.
With time came confusion, and with confusion came anger, desperate to understand why she left you, what you had done to possibly make her so scarce so suddenly. And once the third month had hit without seeing Ellie, you were furious, feeling as though you had one choice and one choice only.
To find Ellie, and get the answers from her yourself.
You donât go to Ellieâs apartment, not usually at least.
Ellie always told you she liked hanging out at your place, going on and on about how warm and cozy it was being there. Sheâd never admit it to you because she didnât want you to think she was a freak, but being in a place that smelled so heavily like you made her brain go absolutely insane.
Youâve been there maybe a handful of times, sometimes heading to her place after a night out, or even stopping by whenever you were in the neighborhood. Bottom line was, your apartment was the designated hang out spot for you and Ellie.
Regardless though, you remember how to get there like itâs written on the back of your hand. You thought about Ellieâs apartment a lot, loving how much the space reflected her. You always wished you had the chance to stay there more often.
You canât think about that though, not now. Not when youâre storming down the expensive halls of her complex down to her door, and landing a heavy fist on the door. All you can truly care about now, is seeing Ellie and demanding an explanation for her sudden disappearance.
And itâs all so unlike you, so out of your character. If it was anyone else, youâd let it go, giving yourself a few days to sulk before forgetting about it all together and simply moving on. Maybe itâs because itâs Ellie, and maybe itâs because you feel a tad bit used after being her personal buffet for the last few times youâd been around her, just for her to up and leave.
Itâs most definitely that. You just donât want to admit it in fears of sounding selfish.
You land another firm knock on her door when she doesnât answer in time, feeling yourself grow angrier as the moments pass.
Soon, sheâs finally opening the door. The image of her nearly takes your breath away.
Because Ellie always looks beautiful, perhaps itâs the fact that you havenât seen her in some time, but she looks fucking ethereal standing before you. So tall, so confident, her eyes so fucking dark, piercing through your very soul as she stares down at you. Her lips look like rubies compared to her cold, pale skin, so plump and kissable.
All you can think about is the way they felt pressed against your throat, and it makes you lift your hand to press against the two small circular scars on your neck.
Ellie frowns deeply as she eyes you, eyebrows furrowed and expression virtually unreadable.
âWhat are you doing hereâ she mumbles out, shifting on her feet awkwardly. Her question alone sets the fire off in your chest again, making you seethe as you take a deep inhale before responding.
âAre you kidding me Ellie?â You practically spit out, staring up at the girl in disbelief.
She lets out a soft sigh, her tattooed hand coming up to rub her face roughly before it moves up to rub through her hair.
âI donât know what youâre talking aboutâ she manages before she tries shutting her door in your face. âYou canât be hereâ she mumbles out softly, the girl fully expecting to be able to shut the door.
You however, have other plans.
Youâre quick to press your hand against the door, stopping her from closing it before you practically force yourself between it. Ellieâs eyes widen a bit at this, not used to seeing you so forward.
Soon, youâre pushing yourself into her apartment, your palm pressing against your forehead as you began pacing back and forth Ellieâs lavish apartment.
âI donâtâŠI donât understand you Ellie. Is it something I said? Did I do something? If so please enlighten me I beg youâ you blurt out, all of the words fumbling out of your mouth in one breath.
Ellie frowns deeply as she watches you pace back and forth her apartment, her eyebrows furrowed. She can truly see the damaged shes caused when she sees you like this, because it was much easier to watch you when you slept, so peaceful and unaware of the troubles that came with her absence. She knew you were going to blame yourself, and as much as she knew she couldnât allow you to do that to yourself, she knew staying away was even more important.
Seeing you like this was possibly the hardest thing Ellie had to ever endure.
You donât stop there, taking advantage of the lack of a response from Ellie to continue ranting.
âIs it because of the blood thing? If so Iâm sorry. I am so fucking sorry for simply caring enough to make sure you didnât die from starvation or whatever it is that happens to you when you donât eat. Iâm sorry for making sure that you were okay, if that was so wrong please tell meâŠâ your words trail off as you let out an exasperated sigh, your feelings and emotions becoming far too much as you practically sob out to her.
But then youâre pausing, your chest rising and falling quickly as you struggle to catch your breath. Ellie isnât entirely sure why youâve suddenly stopped, your back towards her as you stand there, doing god knows what.
When you finally turn around, your eyes are red and your cheeks are wet with tears.
âWere you justâŠ.using me? As your personal fucking blood bag?â Your words are shaky as you hold back another sob, your fists balled down at your sides.
Ellie freezes when you say this, because this is exactly what she was fucking afraid of.
It was a common theme throughoutâŠher people. Vampires were notoriously alluring, seducing countless innocent and clueless victims into being their personal meal. The humans were almost always oblivious to what was being done to them, vampires often times using this to their advantage to keep them under their spell for as long as possible. It would most commonly been done in a way that made the humans believe the vampires loved them, dangling them by a thread as they promised them a life of eternity together, to live in immortality, side by side until the end of times. It almost never ended that way though, the vampires would suck and suck and suck until one day they went a bit too far, and their obedient human keeled over and died.
Ellie never wanted things to be that way with you.
She never even wanted you to think it was that way. She wanted you to understand that this was entirely up to you, and it could stop whenever you wanted it to. Itâs why she constantly voiced to you that this was still a factor right before she fed off of you. Ellie would rather die than use you for a source of food, because truthfully you were far too good for that, too fucking pure to be used as something as low as a food source.
So when the words leave your lips, Ellie sees red.
Shes in front of you in less than a second, towering over you and staring down into your tear soaked eyes. Her nostrils are flared as she tries to hold back from tearing down her entire apartment complex around the both of you.
âYou canât possibly be stupid enough to think Iâd ever use you for something so low..â her voice is low, and thereâs a gravel in it that makes your core tighten and your chest bloom with something you canât quite place, a feeling that can only be shelved in your mind right next to where Ellie takes place.
You donât hack one, hot tears continuing to spill from your eyes as you stare at her with furrowed eyebrows.
âIt makes senseâŠ.get your fix and then leave me like Iâm nothingâŠthis was probably your plan all alongâ you grit out.
Ellie licks her lips, knowing that youâre hurting just as much as she is, and your words are simply coming from a place of confusion, desperate to understand why she did what she did to you, why she left without a trace.
She leans in, her face a mere inches from yours. You can smell her minty breath wafting onto your face, and itâs bizarre because even that has a slight chill to it. It makes your cheeks cold, and it makes you want to reach out and warm her up.
âI would rather die a million deaths before using you for thatâŠyou and I both know thisâ she seethes out.
And it makes you whimper, because Ellieâs always been so fucking intense, so poetic. It makes your insides flip upside down, and your eyebrows knit together as you struggle to hold back a whimper.
Your features soften as you continue to cry in front of her. âThen why did you leave meâŠâ you whisper out to the girl.
It breaks her heart how desperate you are for this. Not even for her, but simply for answers. All you want is to understand why she left, what you did to make her abruptly disappear without a single word.
Ellieâs eyes flutter shut for a moment, her pink tongue darting out to lick her plush lips before she finally speaks.
âIâve neverâŠbeen so weak for someoneâŠin my entire lifeâ she breaths out.
It surely isnât what youâre expecting her to say. You think sheâs going to say sheâs gotten enough of you, or she just couldnât handle having someone like you around. Hell, you were even beginning to think she was trying to cover up all her roots here and start somewhere else.
âI always have beenâŠfrom the moment I fucking laid eyes on you, I knew you werenât good for meâŠyouâre too good for meâ she continues, her eyes fluttering open as she finally stares down into yours. You can finally look into yours as you blink away the tears that are pooling in your eyes and blurring your vision, and it allows you to see the pain in her eyes, just how much sheâd been struggling with all of this.
âIt isnât even your bloodâŠit made it worse, yesâŠbut just being around you is likeâŠitâs like a fucking drug to me. You give me this feeling that I canâtâŠI canât even begin to describe how fucking euphoric you make me feelâ each of her words sounds like a plea, a plea for you to let her go, to unhand her from the death grip you have on her.
âAnd suddenly Iâm always in your apartment, and youâre offering yourself to me and itâs like a dream come true and I feel like a fucking monster when Iâm on top of you, sucking you dry of your fucking bloodâ itâs her turn to start pacing, running her hands through her hair as she settles one of her hands on her hip, she moves slower than you were, simply voicing the struggles sheâs seemed to have with you from the moment you met.
She finally turns towards you, and sheâs slowing make her way to where youâve been standing this entire time. When sheâs right back where she was, stood right in front of you, she takes your hand into hers ever so gently. Itâs enough to make you flinch, how cold she is in contrast to your hot skin. She sighs, bringing your hand up to cradle her cheek, and her eyes flutter shut, nearly rolling back as she presses a soft kiss to your palm.
âIâm not strong enough for youâŠI donât think I ever will beâ she finally admits, and itâs like sheâs not only admitting it to you, but to herself as well.
You hold back a whine as she kisses your palm, her lips so soft, so gentle with you.
âThenâŠthen donât beâŠwhy canât you just let things happenâ you sigh out as you stare up at her, in awe as the girl leaned into your touch as if it were her life line.
You arenât even entirely sure what youâre asking her for, what this so called âthingâ is that she wonât let happen. Is it the feeding youâre alluding to? An act of true platonic kindness? Or are you asking for more, are you begging for something that Ellie has deprived you both of for the sake of the greater good?
Both you and Ellie have these same questions running through your minds.
She chuckles dryly against your skin, shaking her head as her hand gives your wrists a gentle squeeze.
âYou arenât even sure what it is youâre asking forâŠnot from someone like meâ she admits, eyes opening as she finally looks down at you again.
âI canâtâŠgive you the things you deserve. Iâm not capable of being the perfect person for you, not when I am what I amâ her words are like venom on her tongue, the girl utterly disgusted with the monster that she became against her own will, the hell that she was forced to live over and over again with no foreseeable end.
âThe only thing I can do, is take from youâŠI take and take and takeâŠ.â Her words trail off, a soft frown on her lips before she finally looks at you once again.
âUntil Iâve taken everything that you haveâŠand there is no more of you to offerâ she whispers out, as if the mere thought of a world without you pains her so much to say, she barely wants to say it.
You lick your lips, your eyes searching hers before you quickly shake your head.
âDo you want me? The same way that I want you?â You question carefully, fearful of what it is that she might say, worried that youâd been reading things entirely wrong, even after Ellie basically confessed how utterly obsessed she is with you.
She smirks softly, humming lowly as she gently brings your hand down to her lips, pressing another gentle kiss to it.
âItâs like Iâve waited my entire life for you, babyâŠ.saying that I want you would be an understatementâ she chuckles out softly.
And you arenât entirely sure how it even gets to this point, because you marched over to Ellieâs apartment with a purpose, that purpose being to yell at her and get the answers you deserved. But suddenly youâre standing in front of her, and your heart is exploding with so many different emotions and feelings, all of them for Ellie, and sheâs just confessed to you that she wants you like you want her.
And you have no choice, but to kiss her.
It catches Ellie off guard, a soft whine leaving her lips as accepts your lips with gratitude, her arms moving down to drape along your waist as she pulls you closer.
Itâs everything sheâs ever dreamt it would be. Your lips soft and sweet against her own, your skin so warm and inviting, making her drink you up, fueling her with the warmth sheâs lacked since the day she died. But despite how good it feels, she knows this is wrong, and it goes against everything she said sheâd do for your sake.
Ellie breaks way first, watching as you struggle to catch your breath from the intense kiss. Sheâs quick to stop you from leaning in again, her hand cupping your face as she stares into your eyes.
âAngelâŠwe canâtâŠI told you, Iâm no good for youâ she sighs out, the words paining her to even say.
You give her a soft pout, your arms wrapping around her shoulders loosely as you press your warm body against hers.
âI trust you EllieâŠ.I know that youâd never hurt meâ you sigh out softly as you stare into her eyes, your hand coming up to tuck a strand of her soft hair behind her ear.
âWe donât have to do the blood thingâŠbut I justâŠcanât we just give us a try?â Your eyes are wide as you speak, eager to feel Ellieâs lips against yours again, even if for a moment. You donât even take into consideration that she could say no, that she could turn you around and throw you out of her apartment without another word, doubling down on what she said sheâd do with you.
But as Ellie said before, sheâs just too fucking weak for you.
And hearing you ask for it, ask for her, it has her stomach in knots, and she feels like no matter what it is you ask her, she couldnât possibly say no to you.
âWhat are you doing to meâŠâ she sighs softly before she leans in to kiss you again, reciprocating the passion and heat that you gave her mere moments ago. You whine against her, your hands sliding back to tug at her hair, keeping her close as your lips moves against hers, your warm tongue sliding against hers.
âMissed you so muchâŠâ you sigh against her, and it makes Ellie groan softly as she nods, hands sliding down to grip your waist as she walks you back towards her bedroom, lips never leaving yours.
âMissed you more than anything, angelâ she mumbles against your lips as she presses her palm against her bedroom door behind you, pushing it open and leading you further inside.
Ellieâs bedroom smells like her. Itâs dark, and cold but oh so comforting. You practically sigh against her lips when you feel her laying your body down against her black silk sheets, the expensive material like butter on your skin. It makes your senses go in overdrive, Ellieâs hands caressing your skin, roaming around your body as her tongue rubs against yours in a dirty, passionate kiss.
âDonât know how long Iâve waited to have you like thisâŠâ she sighs softly, her lips breaking away from yours to kiss along your jaw, down to your throat. You donât miss the way Ellie kisses the now faded marks of her teeth on your neck, licking the skin softly before she sucks into it, sure to leave dark marks in the morning.
âMissed marking you up babyâŠ.â She hums against you, drinking in the sweet moans that leave your mouth, the sound alone like music to her ears.
Your mind is fuzzy, almost blank besides the thoughts of Ellie that stood in the forefront of your brain. It was like she was filling you up entirely, making you almost overwhelmed with her. Her scent, her cold skin, her soft hands, all of it was almost too much, a combination of sensory overload that kissed your skin so deliciously.
Soon sheâs kissing down your body, practically worshiping her as her lips work on your soft skin. Her hands are pushing up your t-shirt, kissing your stomach and your ribcage until sheâs tugging you up a bit to skillfully slip your shirt over your head. Youâre bare before her, her lips matching onto your pebbled nipples as her tattooed hands work on your soft shorts, tugging them down your legs.
You donât miss the way her tongue swirls around your nipple before letting go with a pop, lips moving up to nip at your collar bone with her flat teeth. Hard enough to leave a mark, but gentle enough to not break skin.
You giggle softly, bending your legs back to help as she tugs your shorts and panties off. Sheâs slotting herself between your legs, humming softly as she gives you a smirk.
âSomething funny baby?â She questions before leaning in to press another kiss to the corner of your lips. You nod, a dreamy smile on your lips as you bring your hand down to tug at the hem of Ellieâs t-shirt.
âSeems like old habits never die, thatâs allâŠ.need this offâ you huff out softly, fingers fumbling between the hem of her t shirt and the waistband of her sweats.
Ellie chuckles at how eager you are before she nods, pulling back to tug her shirt off before she rolls over a bit to pull off her sweats and underwear as well before she makes her way back between your legs, towering over you as she crawls into you like a predator would its prey.
And it leaves your pussy soaking wet, because itâs better than you couldâve ever imagined. Ellieâs tits are pebbled similarly to yours, tattoos littering her pretty skin, muscles so beautiful they could make your mouth fucking water.
Youâd always seen Ellie for the beauty she possessedâŠbut this? This was so much more different.
It made your head fucking spin.
You whined softly as you practically tug her into her by her shoulders, moaning softly at the feeling of her boobs squishing against yours as your mouth attacks her in a needy kiss.
âWant youâŠâ you sigh softly against her as your hand slides down between the both of you, cupping her pussy. You feel Ellie suck in a sharp breath at the feeling of your warm fingers against her sopping wet core, and she gives you an eager nod before rolling over, her strong hands gripping your thighs and taking you with her as she forces you to straddle her.
Being on top of Ellie is just as good as being under her, almost better in all honesty. The lighting in her bedroom is dim, but you can just make out her features with the moonlight that spills in through her big windows, and the moody lights she has set up along her walls. You donât even realize it because youâre too busy gawking at her, but she lifts her leg up a bit and easily slots you down so that your pussy is right against hers, the feeling making you moan softly.
âYouâre so pretty EllieâŠâ you practically sigh out. It makes Ellie moan softly, and she swears the sound of you calling her pretty is enough to bring her back to life, reversing the effects of her undead state.
âFuckâŠcanât say those things to me babyâŠyouâre gonnaâŠJesus..ruin meâ she struggles to get out as she grips your hips, forcing you to roll your hips so that your clit and her clit bumps against each other.
Your eyes flutter shut when you feel it. Itâs so fucking wet, and soft, and itâs like nothing youâve ever felt before. Sure youâd done it with other girls before, but this just feelsâŠit almost feels likeâŠ.
âLike you were fucking made for me princessâ Ellie grits out, her teeth caging her words in as she fucks you down onto her pussy, practically using you for both hers and your pleasure.
Youâre too far gone to pick up on it, too indulged in the feeling of Ellieâs strong hands gripping your thighs so deliciously, sure to leave marks in their shape when you both wake up in the morning.
Your back is arching almost painfully, your hand gripping her thigh as you find the rhythm Ellie has set for you, finding the perfect spot and keeping it there as you drive both you and her to your orgasms.
âIâmâŠEllie you feel so goodâŠyouâre gonna make me cumâ you squeak out, eyebrows furrowed as you finally look down at the girl beneath you, only to find that sheâs just as much of a mess as you are. Her hair is messy and her lips look so pouty and kissable. Itâs hard to make out, but her fanged teeth are pressing into her lips, and youâre sure itâs the sexiest thing youâve seen in your entire life.
She gives you an encouraging nod, one of her hands coming to your ass and kneading it harshly before giving it a firm spank, the sinful noise echoing off the walls of her pristine bedroom.
âI know babyâŠI knowâŠcome on, want you to cum with meâŠthatâs itâŠthatâs my good girlâ her praises make your chest burn, and it leaves knots in your stomach. It only drives you further, your hips moving faster as they roll against Ellieâs, desperately chasing both hers and your orgasm.
âEllieâŠEllie IâmâŠIâm gonna-â you cry out, back arching as you grip her thighs quickly, feeling your own shake as your orgasm begins washing over you.
Ellie catches it right before it happens, the girl quickly sitting up and wrapping her arms around your body, pressing your chest against hers as she pulls you down to kiss her passionately, her own orgasm washing over her like a fucking train.
Your bodies are so in tune, so in sync that your moans almost mix to create a symphony that can only be described as love, total and unconditional love as her arms keep you close, as if stopping you from running away from her, from the feeling she gives you. Her lips are working against yours as you breath hard, struggling to catch your breath in the sloppy kiss.
Youâre a whining mess, your poor pussy far too sensitive to deal with the amount of pleasure that Ellie brought to you, all of it washing over you like an intense sea of euphoria, nearly drowning you as you held onto the girl with weak hands.
She knows youâre weak, because sheâs pulling you down to rest your warm body against her cool sheets, all while keeping her cool body pressed against yours to bring you back down to earth with her.
âThatâs it babyâŠI knowâŠ.did so good for meâŠâ she sighs softly as she leaves gentle kisses against your cheeks and eyes, watching as the aftermath of your orgasm slowly pulls you to the depths of sleep, all of it too much on your body.
âMy beautiful girlâŠmy girlâŠmy girlâŠâ she hums out, almost like a song as she watches you cling to her in your sleep, soft hums and huffs leaving your lips, all of which makes Ellie smile adoringly at you as she holds you while you sleep.
And even while youâre settling into one of the deepest sleeps youâve ever experienced, you donât miss the soft kisses against your lips and cheeks, all paired with the constant, non stop praises from Ellie.
You especially donât miss the way she leans in settles against the pillow next to you, mumbling the softest, sweetest words to you as her hands caressing your naked body.
âI love you, pretty girl..â
#ellie williams smut#ellie williams#ellie williams x y/n#ellie williams x you#ellie tlou#ellie williams x female reader#ellie x y/n#ellie the last of us#ellie x you
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
2024 September 23rd
Okay so. I kept seeing drawings of Siffrin in iconic Sonic the Hedgehog poses for some godforsaken reason? And like, I was a HUGE Sonic nerd as a teenager. Absolutely obsessed. You can't do this to me. As soon as I thought, "Isabeau would fit Knuckles' poses," and "Mirabelle can be Amy Rose!" it was all over. I had to join the funny art trend.
I'd already seen drawings of the really iconic Sonic Adventure poses, so I decided to go with Sonic Advance 3 poses instead. They might not be as recognizable, but as someone who loved SA3, they're iconic to me. And I'm the artist here, the only people who matter are me and my inner child LMAO.
Pose references and more rambling under the cut
^ Character select pixel art from Sonic Advance 3.
I wanted to just go with the flow for this drawing and not worry about style or anatomy as much. No thoughts, head empty, only vibes. It turned into a really fun abomination of my casual art style, ISaT style, and decade-old Sonic-drawing muscle memory. I miss Siffrin's cloak fuzzies though, but Sonic art styles are just so smooth and clean and I couldn't find a way to get them to mesh well.
Time taken was 20 hours and 10 minutes, because I don't know how doodling works.
Isabeau took a fraction of the time Siffrin and especially Mira did. Amy's pose is not meant for human arms. I left behind a graveyard of failed hand poses. Meanwhile Siffrin was rough because of their friggin cloak making the pose hard to read, but I figured it out!
I'm still new to writing screen reader alt text, and I have no idea if I'm going overboard or not, lol. 291-word description essay GO!
802 notes
·
View notes
Note
Hi! Iâm new here! Idk if you are taking requests rn but umm, do you think maybe you could write the filthiest smut where Agatha is obsessed with readers pussy and after she pulls out she like holds her open just to watch her convulse and throb and watch everything seep out and she just talks about how perfect her pussy is? And then maybe reader has a biiiiiig thing for Agathaâs titties and canât get enough of them in her mouth and falls asleep sucking on them for comfort? If not itâs okay I totally get it. Your fics do more for me than any other fics Iâve read đ
This was a hot request tbh so thank you! Hope it's as filthy as you wanted it to be
Title is Lana Del Rey song because coming up with titles are the bane of my existence and it kind of works
Cherry Cola
Agatha comes home after being away on a work trip for a week and you two have some catching up to do
Word count: 2400
Warnings: porn, literally pure filth and smut, girl penis agatha, cum fixation, fingering, sex, mommy kink, nipple fixation, slight nursing kink, so much dirty talk, think this is all
Youâve been perpetually horny for a week straight and itâs all your girlfriendâs fault.Â
She left on Sunday for a work trip and as she kissed you goodbye, told you that, under no circumstances at all, were you allowed to touch yourself until she was back on Saturday.Â
You thought it wouldnât be that much of a challenge, since she wouldnât be here constantly turning you on.Â
And then the texts started. The photos. The videos.Â
Messages like I wanna fuck you so bad and Need to fill you with my cum and watch it leak out of you and God I miss your tight pretty pink pussy so much filled your phone and she would send accompanying pictures and recordings of her hard and leaking cock or of the mess she made after she came.Â
Your particular favorite was a video of her furiously stroking her cock by the hotel window and splattering her cum all over it. Her grunts are still ingrained in your mind.Â
After a week of those, you were slowly going out of your mind, constantly having to change your underwear, but never once touching yourself.Â
Even though it was literal torture.Â
But itâs finally Saturday, and you are vibrating with need while you wait for Agatha to come home. She hasnât told you when sheâll get there, so you pace restlessly around the kitchen for most of the day, trying and failing to distract yourself with something.Â
Youâve never been so turned on in your life, and Agatha has never let you go this long without an orgasm.Â
And then finally, finally, you hear the key turning in the lock and the front door opening.Â
Agatha barely makes it into the foyer before you pounce, slamming her back against the wall and kissing her. Youâre already wet just from that when she sweeps her tongue into your mouth and switches positions to pin your arms up.Â
âDid you miss me, baby?â She asks amusedly, tugging your bottom lip between her teeth.Â
âSo much, Aggie,â you say, squirming against her restraint. You just need to feel her against you.Â
She tightens her grip with a smirk and looks you up and down in your desperate state. âWere you a good girl while mommy was gone?âÂ
You nod and groan. âI didnât touch myself, no thanks to what you sent. You were killing me.âÂ
âSo good for me, doll. Youâll do anything I say, wonât you? You want my cock inside you?âÂ
You bite your lip, eyes dropping to the tent in her pants. All you can think about is having her inside you. Itâs not a want anymore, itâs a completely all-consuming need.Â
She grabs your chin in her hand and roughly tilts you up to make eye contact. âUse your words, baby. Tell mommy what you want.âÂ
You swallow thickly, desire holding your brain hostage. âI want you,â you rasp and she raises an eyebrow, urging you on. Her fingers slide down to your throat as a warning. âI want your cock inside me. I want to feel you throbbing and twitching because of me and I want you to fill me up like only you can. Fill up my perfect pussy that belongs to you. Feel you drip out of me cause I love it when you cum inside me.âÂ
Youâve been with Agatha long enough to know exactly what she loves to hear. And she loves to hear filthy, explicit details, especially about your cunt. Which you loved to provide.
Before her, you had never really been one to voice your desires. It made you feel embarrassed, almost.Â
But with Agatha, she wants to hear every single dirty thing on your mind. It had taken some getting used to at first, but when you realized what to say, and the effect it had on both of you, you couldnât believe youâd never done it before.Â
Agatha moans at your words and drags you in for a hot kiss, her tongue moving against yours and staking her claim of your mouth. Itâs like sheâs trying to invade your body through your lips and you let her.Â
The hand around your throat slides down your stomach and dips under the waistband of your pants and you whimper when she touches you over your underwear.Â
âGod, have you been this soaked the entire week?â She asks with a taunting laugh and your cheeks flush.Â
But she isnât wrong. âI went through so many pairs of underwear,â you admit quietly and her smirk gets even bigger.Â
âWell, we better do something about that, donât you think?âÂ
âPlease, mommy, need you to fuck me,â you beg and she grabs your hand and drags you up the stairs and to the bedroom. The ache inside you has grown into a gaping cavern.Â
Agatha puts you onto the bed and makes quick work of unbuttoning her shirt and unclasping her bra. She shimmies off her pants and you do the same, throwing your clothes somewhere across the room.Â
Your eyes immediately fall to your girlfriendâs breasts.Â
You may or may not have a huge thing about them.Â
Theyâre perky and so soft and thereâs something about having her nipple in your mouth that makes you feel at peace with the world.Â
She sees you looking. âWant to suck on mommy?âÂ
The question makes even more heat flare through you but you only have one thing on your mind right now.Â
Her cock.Â
Which is harder than a rock, precum dripping off it, and standing at attention pointing right toward you.
You shake your head. âMaybe later, just want you inside me now.âÂ
She growls and crawls on the bed to you, grabbing your legs and yanking so youâre flat on your back. You gasp, waiting for her to push into you, but instead you feel her fingers stroking through your folds.Â
âGod, Iâve missed your perfect pussy,â she sighs, teasing at your entrance. Your hips roll to try to get her inside, but she collects your wetness and circles your clit with it.Â
âMommy,â you whine, needier than ever.Â
She shushes you. âI know, sweetheart, but be a good girl and let mommy play with you for a bit. Iâve missed your pretty pink cunt so much this past week.âÂ
You bite your lip but noises still slip out as she fucks two fingers into easily and twists them. She scissors them to stretch you out, grinning when your back arches off the bed.Â
âFuck, baby, youâre so tight and wet and warm around me,â she says, curling her fingers just right. âCanât wait to feel you wrapped around my cock. You always feel so good squeezing around me, just need to fill you up and watch mommyâs love drip out of you.â
You keen at the visual, a light sheen breaking out over your body. Sheâs still fucking you with her fingers and youâre panting, babbling for more.Â
âAre you ready for my cock?â She asks and you immediately whimper, making her laugh.Â
âPlease, mommy, need you to fuck me,â you say, your head spinning with want.Â
âWhat do you want?â She gets into position, grabbing her cock and stroking it, spreading her precum up and down her length. You get sidetracked watching her hips jerk forward and you moan loudly when she leans down to rub her tip against your clit.Â
Your head twists to the side as she begins to move herself up and down, coating her cock with your wetness, each time coming back up to move around your clit. Agatha lets out little gasps at the feeling and itâs only doing more to spur you on.Â
âAggie, please, please, please,â you cry, and she pushes just the tip in. You squirm to try and get more of her in you, but she pauses and just admires the sight.Â
âFuck, baby doll, you look so nice like this. Might have to take some pictures of my cock stretching you out for the next time I have to go away for so long,â she says and you clench around her. She, of course, notices and smirks. âI bet youâd like that, wouldnât you?âÂ
âAnything you want, mommy, just please fuck me!âÂ
She tuts at your impatience, but pushes in and bottoms out nonetheless. Your mouth opens at the not unpleasant stretch but nothing comes out and Agatha moans at the feeling of your walls around her again. Her hands scramble for purchase on your hips so sheâs able to angle you up and she can slide in deeper.Â
âFuck,â she swears in a low voice and you think you get wetter. Hearing her so affected by you is always a massive turn-on. She starts slowly rutting into you, never pulling out very much like it would be a pain to leave your cunt. âBeen too long, I missed this. You feel so good stretched around me.âÂ
She positions herself over you so she can kiss you as she begins to move in and out of you more. You have to continuously break away from her mouth though because she keeps hitting that perfect spongy spot inside you like always and it feels too good.Â
Your head drops back against the pillow beneath you and your eyes roll back in your head from the way sheâs fucking you.Â
Agatha always knows exactly what you need and she always gives it to you. And based on the way sheâs breathing, sheâs getting exactly what she needs, too.Â
You become distracted by the movement of her breasts with every push and you canât help yourself from grabbing them with your hands. When you brush over her nipples, you can feel her pulse inside you and her rhythm stutters for a moment.Â
âThere you go, baby, play with mommyâs boobs,â she mutters, putting more effort into regaining her speed than talking loudly. But her mouth is right next to your ear so you hear her clearly. You roll her nipples between your fingers, tugging whenever she gives you a particularly rough thrust.Â
You can feel her throbbing inside you and you know sheâs getting close. Which is perfect, because you are, too. You know she can feel you clenching when she deliciously drags her cock against your walls and tiny noises from both of you fill the air.Â
âFuck, baby, mommyâs going to cum in your pussy,â she groans, her drives becoming shorter and shallower. You reach down to rub at your clit to push yourself over the finish line but she slaps your hand away and her thumb takes its place.
Youâre so close.Â
âNeed you to cum inside me, need to feel it,â you blather and her whole body stiffens and her breathing gets tighter. She goes silent for a moment before letting out a long moan, and you feel her throb inside you before a warmth spreads.Â
Her cum inside you triggers your orgasm and you tip off the edge of the precipice and pleasure explodes through your body. Cumming for the first time in a week is like dying and going to heaven, only to be revived by an angel.Â
The moment you come down, Agatha pulls out and quickly moves down your body.Â
This is her favorite part.Â
She maneuvers your legs so theyâre bent with your feet on the bed and spreads your cunt lips open with her fingers. You gasp when you feel her cum start to ooze out and Agathaâs nails dig into your thigh at the sight.Â
âGod, baby, look at that,â she says in awe. She collects it on two fingers and holds it up so you can see. Your lips part involuntarily and she reaches back down to wrap her hand around her cock and start lightly stroking.Â
Your throat suddenly feels dry at the image of Agatha doing that and you lightly cough.Â
A glob of her cum splatters out of you and Agatha groans lustfully, hips lurching forward.Â
âYour fucking pussy,â she says. âSo fucking perfect and pretty for me. I fucking love watching my cum seep out of you after I ruin you.âÂ
You canât help but moan when she takes her hand off her cock and begins spreading her seed all over your pussy lips, absolutely smearing it everywhere like sheâs marking you.Â
âGod, Agatha,â you whimper when she begins to rub at your clit. Your walls squeeze and it sends more of her cum trickling out, which is her plan.Â
âItâs so hot seeing you covered with me,â she sighs and begins to circle you even faster, not penetrating you at all so when you start to convulse, her cum can flow right out. And it does; you can feel it leak and you can hear Agathaâs sharp breaths.Â
You cum again, making a huge mess all over the bed and Agatha, who doesnât mind one bit.Â
She gets you a warm towel to clean your pussy and you lay on the bed, eyes closing, while she gets you a change of clothes.Â
âHow was that, baby?â She asks, helping you put on pajamas. She puts on sweats and an oversized purple flannel.Â
You moan happily, immediately flocking to her side once she lays down next to you. âSo good,â you answer, taking your rightful place on her shoulder with her arm wrapped around you. âMissed you so much.âÂ
She kisses your head and gently plays with the ends of your hair. âI missed you too, baby. Might have to take you with me next time.âÂ
You nod eagerly. âHide me in your hotel room and fuck me all day and night,â you add and she chuckles. You shift a little, unsure of how to ask for what you need right now.Â
But she notices your loaded silence and can put two and two together based on what you usually need after sheâs been gone awhile.Â
Without saying a word, she slowly starts to unbutton her flannel with one hand and you quickly help her to open it.Â
âSo needy for mommy,â she remarks but you canât find it in you to care because her chest is bare to the world and so are your favorite things.Â
You contentedly suck one of her nipples into your mouth and suckle on it, hand coming up to lazily play with the other one.Â
Agatha moans softly when your tongue flicks around her and thatâs how you fall asleep.Â
With her nipple in your mouth, feeling perfectly fucked and fulfilled.Â
#agatha harkness x fem!reader#agatha harkness x reader#agatha x reader#agatha x you#agatha harkness x you#agatha harkness smut#agatha smut#agatha all along
470 notes
·
View notes
Text
I Let The World Burn For You - N.R | Part 1
P: Serial Killer!Ni-ki X Fem!Reader
Warnings: Graphic Descriptions, Murder, Manipulation, Attempted Murder, Injury/Blood, Teasing, Angst, Obsessive Behaviour, Mind Games, Ni-ki is a nerd.
Synopsis: Youâve always loved crime shows, captivated by the mystery and mind games, but you never expected to live in one. When a killer develops an unsettling obsession with you, youâre thrust into a deadly game where youâre not just a targetâyouâre the centerpiece.
Wordcount: 27k
a/n: HELLO! TUMBLR!? Since i cant have more then 1k blocks i had to split this in 2 parts! LET ME WRITE LONG FICS! PLS! ugh.. (i kept replaying the apparation by sleeptoken while writing :p) hope yall enjoy another dark romance with obsessed yet super whipped Ni-ki! ( he kinda a red flag)
See request here
--
Youâve always had a fascination with crime shows. The ones without too many jump scares or unnecessary goreâyou could do without that. What hooked you wasnât the blood or the screams; it was the puzzle. The way the police pieced together scattered fragments of a life, how they followed the tiniest trail of evidence to unravel the truth. Every crime media you could find, you devoured it all.
At school, it wasnât unusual to find you with your nose buried in a crime or mystery novel. Whether it was during lunch, in the corner of the library, or even in the few precious minutes before class started, the worn pages of your current read were always in your hands. Sherlock Holmes, Agatha Christie, modern thrillersâyou read them all.
Your classmates noticed, of course. Theyâd whisper about it in passing, sometimes teasing you for being "obsessed with murder books." But you didnât care. If anything, you found their reactions amusing. They didnât get it, didnât understand how fascinating it was to try to outsmart the characters or piece together clues before the story revealed its secrets. Even your teachers started catching on. Your literature professor once quipped, âIf I ever go missing, Iâll trust you to solve the case,â while glancing at the battered mystery novel lying atop your open notebook.
But it wasnât just about books or shows anymore. Over time, the skills you picked up seeped into your daily life. Youâd notice thingsâdetails others overlooked. A friendâs new haircut no one mentioned, the faint smell of smoke lingering on someoneâs jacket, or the way peopleâs stories didnât quite line up. Youâd trained your brain to analyze, to question, to search for answers.
You didnât really have anyone to share your interest with, but that didnât bother you much. Most people at school had their own cliques, their own hobbies, and their own little dramas to focus on. You didnât fit neatly into any of those circles, but you were fine with that.
Besides, there was something satisfying about keeping to yourself. It gave you the freedom to observe without distraction. People-watching became second natureâcatching snippets of conversations, noticing who avoided who in the hallways, or piecing together which classmates had paired off in secret. It was like the school was its own crime scene, full of tiny, inconsequential mysteries that no one else even thought to notice.
You had your theories about everyone, from the student council president who always left early on Thursdays to the quiet kid in the back row who seemed to have a different excuse for every missing assignment. None of it was malicious, of courseâit was just your way of passing the time.
But every so often, youâd catch someone watching you. A fleeting glance from across the cafeteria or a pair of eyes lingering a little too long in the hallway.
But every time you tried to figure out who it was, the moment would pass too quickly. Youâd glance up, scanning the crowd, but no one would be looking your way. It was frustrating in a way that didnât make sense, like trying to solve a puzzle without all the pieces.
And yet, the gaze itself was never uncomfortable. It didnât feel like the sharp, judgmental stares you were used to when people whispered about your âmurder books.â No, this one was different. It was soft, almost curious, like whoever it was didnât want to disturb you. Instead of making you uneasy, it left a warmth in its wake, a strange flutter in your chest that lingered long after the moment passed.
You started to notice it more often. In the cafeteria, during assemblies, even on the rare occasions when youâd glance up from your book in the library. It was subtle, just a sense that someone was watching, but every time you turned your head to catch them, they were gone.
It became a mystery of its own, one you couldnât quite let go of. You tried to piece it together the way you would in a show or a novel. Who sat near you at lunch? Who crossed paths with you between classes? Who could have that kind of presence without you noticing until it was too late?
But no matter how much you thought about it, you came up empty. And the strangest part was, you werenât entirely sure you wanted to solve it. Because, in some inexplicable way, that gaze felt⊠safe. Like someone had taken the time to notice youânot as the âgirl with the crime books,â but as you.
Still, the curiosity gnawed at you. One day, as you sat in your usual spot by the library window, lost in a particularly tense chapter of your latest read, you felt it again. That quiet, steady gaze, warm and unhurried.
This time, you didnât look up right away. Instead, you waited, letting the feeling settle over you like a blanket. You turned the page of your book slowly, pretending to stay engrossed, all while your pulse quickened in anticipation.
And then, with deliberate calm, you lifted your head and scanned the room.
At first, it seemed like every other time. Just a sea of faces, none of them focused on you. But then, in the far corner, you caught itâa pair of eyes meeting yours before quickly looking away.
Your heart stuttered. You knew that face.
You knew that face because it belonged to Nishimura Ni-ki. Quiet, unassuming, always with his head buried in a textbook or his notebook. You hadnât talked much, only exchanging a few words in the classes you shared or the brief, awkward apologies after he accidentally bumped into you in the hallway, scrambling to pick up his scattered books. He wasnât exactly invisible, but he never drew attention to himselfânot in the way others did.
But you also knew him for another reason. Nishimura Ni-ki was the campus prime target for bullying.
You hated seeing it. The way some of the guys would shove him into lockers, muttering cruel things under their breath loud enough for him to hear. The way others would snatch his things, throw them across the hall, or crumple his assignments into balls of paper. Worst of all was the day you saw someone snap his glasses clean in half, right in front of him, leaving him standing there, helpless and humiliated.
Without even thinking, you had stepped in. No hesitation, no second thoughtâyou just swung. Your fist connected with the guyâs face, the sickening crack of his nose breaking echoing in the hallway. Everything had gone silent. People stared as you shook out your knuckles, glaring down at the guy as he clutched his face, blood pouring between his fingers.
Sure, you got suspended for a few days after that, but it had been worth it.
From that day on, youâd kept an eye outânot just for Ni-ki, but for anyone being harassed. You couldnât stand it, couldnât stand the way some people seemed to think they had a right to make others miserable just because they could. But with Ni-ki, it was different. Something about the way heâd looked at you that dayâwide-eyed, stunned, like he couldnât quite believe someone had stood up for himâit stuck with you.
After that, you noticed him more often. Sitting alone in the library, his hair falling into his eyes as he scribbled notes. Walking to class with his close-knit group of friends, smiling faintly at something one of them said. And now, you realized, he was quietly watching you.
Your stomach flipped as your eyes locked with his for the briefest moment before he quickly looked away, pretending to focus on the open book in front of him. You hadnât even realized he knew who you were, let alone that heâd been the one watching you all this time.
For a moment, you sat frozen, unsure what to do. Then, on impulse, you stood up, tucking your book under your arm as you made your way across the library.
Ni-ki didnât notice you at first. He was scribbling something in the margins of his notebook, his brows furrowed in concentration. But when you stopped in front of his table, he glanced up, and his eyes widened.
âHey,â you said, keeping your voice low to avoid disturbing the others. âGot room for one more?â
His gaze darted to the empty chair across from him, then back to you. For a moment, he looked like he might say no. But then he nodded, his lips curling into the faintest hint of a smile.
âYeah,â he murmured, his voice quiet but steady. âSure.â
You slid into the seat, setting your book down on the table. For a moment, neither of you spoke, the silence stretching between you like an unspoken question. But it wasnât awkward. If anything, it felt⊠comfortable.
You sat there for a while, the silence punctuated only by the faint scratch of Ni-kiâs pencil against his notebook and the soft rustle of turning pages. But your curiosity wouldnât let you sit still for long. You closed your book, leaning forward slightly.
âCan I ask you something?â you said, keeping your voice low.
Ni-ki looked up from his notes, his pencil pausing mid-word. His expression was cautious, unsure, but he nodded. âYeah?â
âWhy were you looking at me earlier?â you asked, tilting your head slightly. âItâs not the first time, is it?â
His eyes widened, and a faint flush crept up his neck. âOh, IâuhâŠâ He trailed off, fumbling for words. For a moment, you thought he might brush it off or deny it entirely. But then he exhaled and gave a small, sheepish shrug. âIâve seen you reading crime novels. A lot. And⊠I like them too.â
You blinked, surprised. âYou do?â
He nodded, glancing down at his notebook like he was embarrassed to admit it. âYeah. I mean, I donât talk about it much, but Iâve always been into them. Mysteries, thrillers, true crime⊠all of it. I guess I just noticed because youâre always reading them too.â
A grin spread across your face before you could stop it. âSeriously? I didnât think anyone else here cared about that stuff.â
Ni-kiâs lips twitched into a small smile. âYeah, well⊠itâs not exactly the kind of thing people talk about, you know? But Iâve always thought it was coolâhow detectives figure everything out, all the little clues coming together.â
âExactly!â you said, leaning forward a little more, your excitement bubbling over. âThatâs the best part. Like, the storyâs great and all, but the process of solving it? The way everything clicks in the end? Itâs so satisfying.â
His smile widened, and for the first time, he looked genuinely at ease. âRight? And when you figure it out before the characters do? Thatâs the best feeling.â
You nodded eagerly, the conversation flowing effortlessly now. You started swapping favorite books and shows, debating the best fictional detectives and the most clever twists youâd seen. Ni-ki talked about his love for true crime documentaries, how heâd binge-watch them whenever he had a free weekend. You shared your obsession with whodunits, confessing how youâd pause episodes just to try to solve the case before the big reveal.
Time slipped by without you realizing it. The library around you faded into the background as you talked, your usual quiet demeanor replaced by the spark of shared enthusiasm. Ni-ki was surprisingly easy to talk to, his reserved nature melting away as the two of you bonded over your mutual love for crime stories.
At some point, you glanced at the clock and realized lunch was almost over. You sighed, reluctantly closing your book. âGuess weâll have to pick this up later. Iâve got class.â
Ni-ki nodded, but there was a flicker of something in his eyesâdisappointment, maybe? It was subtle, but you caught it.
âHey,â you said as you stood, slinging your bag over your shoulder. âWe should talk more about this sometime. Maybe⊠tomorrow?â
His gaze snapped up to yours, and for a moment, he just stared at you, like he couldnât quite believe you were serious. Then he nodded, his smile small but genuine. âYeah. Iâd like that.â
You grinned and gave him a quick wave before heading toward the door.
The rest of the day felt oddly brighter. You couldnât quite put your finger on why, but something about that conversation with Ni-ki lingered with you. Maybe it was because youâd finally found someone who shared your interest, someone who didnât just dismiss it as âweirdâ or âcreepy.â Or maybe it was because, for the first time, Ni-ki hadnât seemed like the quiet, distant figure youâd always known him as. He felt⊠real.
The next day, you found yourself scanning the library during lunch without even thinking about it. And sure enough, there he wasâsitting at the same table, his notebook open in front of him, scribbling something in his neat handwriting.
You hesitated for a moment, suddenly feeling a little nervous. What if he thought yesterday was a one-time thing? What if he wasnât expecting you to actually show up? But then he looked up, and the moment his eyes met yours, his face lit up with a small but unmistakable smile.
That was all the invitation you needed. You crossed the room and slid into the seat across from him, setting your bag down beside you.
âHey,â you said, trying to sound casual.
âHey,â he replied, his tone soft but warm.
It didnât take long for the conversation to pick up where youâd left off. You talked about the book you were reading, how the protagonist was struggling to crack a seemingly unsolvable case. Ni-ki listened intently, occasionally chiming in with his own thoughts or theories. When it was his turn, he shared about a true crime documentary heâd started the night before.
As the days went by, it became a routine. Every lunch break, youâd find each other in the library, your conversations growing longer and more animated. What started as casual chats about crime novels and documentaries quickly expanded into other topicsâfavorite genres, books youâd loved as kids, even the little quirks youâd noticed about your classmates.
Ni-ki opened up more than you ever expected. You learned that he loved puzzles, that he had a knack for spotting patterns and solving problems. He admitted, almost shyly, that he wanted to be a forensic scientist someday, to solve real-life mysteries.
You told him about your fascination with detective work, how youâd always loved the idea of uncovering the truth. You joked that maybe youâd end up as a detective yourself one day, solving cases while he analyzed the evidence. He laughed at that, a soft, genuine sound that you realized you wanted to hear more of.
âHey,â he said, his voice quieter than usual.
You looked up, slinging your bag over your shoulder. âYeah?â
âI just⊠I wanted to say thanks,â he said, not quite meeting your eyes. âFor, you know⊠sticking up for me. Back then. And now.â
You blinked, caught off guard by the sincerity in his tone. âYou donât have to thank me for that, Ni-ki. No one deserves to be treated like that.â
He nodded, his fingers fidgeting with the strap of his bag. âI know, but⊠it meant a lot. And so does this. Talking to you, I mean. Itâs⊠nice.â
You felt a warmth spread through your chest, the same kind youâd felt every time you caught him watching you. âItâs nice for me too,â you admitted, offering him a small smile.
For a moment, he just looked at you, his expression soft and almost⊠hopeful. Then he nodded, slinging his bag over his shoulder.
âSame time tomorrow?â he asked.
âOf course,â you said, already looking forward to it.
--
You and Ni-ki walked side by side down the hallway, the buzz of students heading to their next class filling the air. He was carrying a few books in his arms, his notebook precariously balanced on top, while the two of you chatted about your plans for the day.
âIâve got a project due for history,â you said, groaning. âIâll probably be stuck in the library all afternoon. What about you?â
âStudying for the calculus test,â Ni-ki replied with a faint smile. âThough, knowing me, Iâll still probably bomb it.â
âYou wonât,â you assured him. âYou just need to stop doubting yourself so much.â
He chuckled softly at that, and the sound was warmâgenuine. You had started to notice these little things about him, the way he opened up a bit more when it was just the two of you.
As you reached your classroom door, you slowed to a stop, turning to face him. âAlright, this is me. Iâll see you at lunch later?â
âYeah, Iâllââ
Before Ni-ki could finish his sentence, someone shoved him hard from behind. He stumbled forward, dropping his books as he fell onto his knees. His notebook skidded across the floor, pages fluttering.
âOops,â the voice sneered mockingly from behind. âDidnât see you there, nerd.â
You whipped around, your blood instantly boiling. It was one of the usual suspectsâone of the guys who seemed to make it his personal mission to make Ni-kiâs life miserable. His smug smirk widened as he stood there, hands in his pockets, his posture radiating mock innocence.
âWhat the hell is wrong with you?â you snapped, your voice echoing in the hallway.
The guy raised an eyebrow, shrugging nonchalantly. âRelax, it was an accident.â
âAccident, my ass,â you shot back, stepping forward. âYouâve got the brainpower of a rock, but even you know how to avoid people in a hallway.â
A few students nearby paused to watch, their conversations trailing off as they sensed the tension.
The guyâs smirk faltered for a second, his eyes narrowing. âWatch your mouth.â
âOr what?â you challenged, crossing your arms. âYouâll try to push me too? Letâs see how far you get.â
He opened his mouth, likely to hurl an insult your way, but before he could get the words out, a stern voice interrupted.
âIs there a problem here?â
A teacher had appeared at the end of the hallway, arms crossed, eyes flicking between you, Ni-ki, and the bully.
The guy immediately straightened, his smugness replaced with a fake innocence. âNo problem, sir. Just a little accident.â
The teacherâs eyes lingered on him for a moment, skeptical but unwilling to escalate without proof. âThen I suggest you keep moving before youâre late to class.â
The bully muttered something under his breath and stalked off, throwing one last glare over his shoulder. You glared right back until he disappeared into the crowd.
With the hallway clearing, you turned back to Ni-ki, who was still on the ground, gathering his books with a quiet, resigned expression. You knelt down beside him, helping him scoop up his notebook and a few loose papers.
âYou okay?â you asked softly, handing him the last of his things.
He nodded, though his cheeks were flushed, not from the fall but from the embarrassment of it all. âYeah. Thanks.â
You stood and offered him your hand. He hesitated for a moment before taking it, and you pulled him to his feet.
âDonât let jerks like that get to you,â you said firmly, your voice softer now. âHeâs just miserable with his own life, so heâs trying to make you feel the same way. But he doesnât get to win.â
Ni-kiâs lips twitched into the smallest of smiles as he adjusted the books in his arms. âIâm starting to think you like fighting my battles more than I do.â
You laughed, nudging his arm lightly. âSomeoneâs gotta have your back.â
The bell rang just as you and Ni-ki made your way to your separate classes.
You sank into your seat, the dull buzz of the classroom settling around you as your mind wandered back to what had just happened. You hated seeing that side of Ni-ki dimmed by people who had nothing better to do than pick on someone who kept to himself.
Your teacher walked in, and the usual routine of class began. You tried to focus, taking notes, participating when necessary, but it was hard to shake off the image of Ni-ki being knocked down again. Even harder, was knowing that no matter how much you tried to defend him, the cycle would probably continue.
It wasnât that you didnât understand the way people like that bully operatedâpeople who picked on others because they could, because it was easier to tear someone else down than deal with their own problems. What pissed you off was that Ni-ki never seemed to ask for help. He didnât fight back, didnât make a scene, and kept everything buried under that quiet, almost invisible demeanor of his.
You didnât know why you cared so much. Maybe it was because he was finally someone who shared your interests, someone who didnât see you as weird or obsessive for reading crime novels or binge-watching shows about detectives. Or maybe it was because, for the first time in a long while, you found someone you didnât mind looking out for.
The rest of class passed by in a blur, and when the bell rang again, signaling the end of the period, you packed up your things quickly, eager to catch up with Ni-ki.
You hadnât seen him on your way out, but he wasnât hard to find. When you stepped out into the hall, you spotted him near his locker, his back slightly hunched as he rifled through his bag. He looked like he was in his own world, eyes focused on something only he could see.
You walked up to him, your footsteps steady.
âYou good?â you asked, breaking the silence.
Ni-ki turned slightly, startled for a moment. When he saw it was you, the tension in his shoulders visibly loosened. âYeah, Iâm fine,â he replied, his voice soft but steady. âThanks again for earlier. You didnât have to do that.â
You shrugged, trying to downplay it. âItâs not a big deal. Heâs just a jerk. Besides, if no one stands up for you, who will?â
Ni-ki didnât answer right away. He just stared at you for a moment, as if weighing your words. After a long pause, he gave a small, almost shy smile. âI guess⊠Iâve never really thought about it like that.â
âWell, now you know,â you said with a grin. âIf you ever need backup, Iâm around.â You tried to keep your tone light, but there was a quiet sincerity in it.
Ni-ki nodded, his expression softening, as if he were grateful, but unsure how to show it. âThanks. I⊠I appreciate it.â
The bell rang, signaling the start of the next class, and you both turned to head in opposite directions. You glanced back at him before walking away, feeling that familiar pull of wanting to make sure he was okay.
Over the next few days, you found yourself in more and more situations where people were picking on Ni-ki, or even just others around campus. It wasnât always the same faces; sometimes it was a random group, sometimes it was a repeat offender. But every time, you couldnât just walk by.
One afternoon, you were heading toward the library when you spotted a couple of guys standing by the lockers. One of them had his hands shoved into Ni-kiâs chest, laughing as he made some cruel remark about Ni-kiâs glasses being too big for his face. Ni-kiâs eyes were lowered, his shoulders tense, his voice barely a whisper as he tried to back away, but the guys werenât letting him go.
Without thinking, you rushed forward, your heart pounding in your chest. âHey!â you called out, your voice cutting through the laughter. âWhat the hell is wrong with you?â
The guys turned to face you, their expressions mocking. âOh, look, itâs the weird kid whoâs always reading those detective books,â one of them sneered. âWhat, you gonna cry for him too?â
You didnât flinch. âIâll cry if it means you get a reality check. You think picking on people makes you cool? It doesnât.â
The bully smirked, stepping closer. âMaybe you should mind your own business, huh? No one cares what you think.â
âThatâs where youâre wrong,â you snapped, standing your ground. âI do care. And I donât let people get away with treating others like crap. So if youâve got a problem with him, youâve got a problem with me.â You took a step forward, matching his arrogance with a calm confidence. âGo ahead, say something back. I dare you.â
The guyâs face twisted in frustration, but before he could retort, another voice interrupted.
âIs there a problem here?â A teacher had appeared, walking briskly down the hall with an authoritative presence.
The bully shot one last glance at you, a sneer still hanging on his lips, before muttering, âWhatever, itâs just a joke.â
âThen keep your âjokesâ to yourself,â you said, watching as he slinked off with his friend in tow.
As the tension cleared, you turned to Ni-ki, who was standing there, still looking a little shell-shocked. He didnât speak for a moment, just staring at you like you had just pulled him out of the depths of something he didnât know how to escape.
âYou alright?â you asked quietly, your voice softer now.
Ni-ki nodded slowly, though he still looked like he wasnât quite sure how to respond. âIâIâm fine. Thanks again. But you really didnât have to do that.â
âI did,â you said, giving him a smile. âI donât let people get away with stuff like that. You deserve better than being treated like that, and so does everyone else.â
Ni-kiâs eyes met yours for a moment, something unreadable flickering behind them before he spoke. âMaybe⊠maybe I donât know how to stand up for myself the way you do.â
âThatâs alright,â you said with a shrug. âNot everyone does. But itâs not too late to start.â
As the bell rang, signaling the end of lunch, you both began walking toward your next classes. You could feel his presence beside you, his quiet thanks still lingering in the air, but it didnât feel awkward. You had his back, and that was what mattered.
You didnât always receive praise for standing up to people. You didnât always get the support you mightâve hoped for. Sometimes youâd get the sneers and judgment from those who didnât understand, those who thought that letting things slide or keeping their heads down was the easier way to go.
But you didnât care.
You didnât care about the sideways glances, or the occasional whispered insults behind your back. You couldnât stand by and do nothing.
And if that meant dealing with the backlash, so be it. Youâd rather face that than let someone else feel alone.
A few days later, you woke up feeling offâhead throbbing, throat scratchy, and your body aching like you'd been hit by a truck. You groaned, pulling yourself out of bed only to immediately collapse back under the covers. The thought of going to school was unbearable, and you knew you needed rest more than anything else.
The absence of the usual noise from school made everything feel stiller, emptier. It was a strange feeling, knowing you wouldnât be there to keep an eye out for Ni-ki, to have his back in the way you had grown accustomed to.
That afternoon, the day passed slowly, and you spent most of it in and out of sleep. When you checked your phone again later, you saw that Ni-ki had sent another message: "Is everything okay? Haven't seen you today."
You smiled at his concern, typing back, "Yeah, just sick. I'll be back soon, donât worry."
The next few days were rougher than youâd expected. What you thought was just a mild bug turned into a fever that left you bedridden. You tried to keep up with school through messages from classmates and the occasional email from teachers, but your energy was practically nonexistent.
Ni-ki checked in on you every day, like clockwork. His texts were short and to the point, but they carried a warmth that made you smile despite your pounding headache.
"Feeling any better today?" "Donât push yourself, okay?" "I can drop off notes if you need them."
Youâd chuckle at the last one, imagining Ni-ki walking up to your door with a stack of papers and books. "Thanks, but Iâll survive. Just focus on yourself," youâd reply, even though you appreciated the thought more than you could express.
Despite his reassurances that everything was fine, you couldnât help but worry. Ni-ki wasnât exactly the type to tell you if something was wrong, especially when it came to the bullies. The thought of him being alone, enduring their usual torment without you there to step in, gnawed at the edges of your mind.
By the third day, your fever started to break, and you felt well enough to sit up and respond to messages without immediately passing out. You sent Ni-ki a text: "Howâs school been?"
A few minutes passed before his reply came in. "Same as always. Donât worry about me."
You frowned. That was exactly the kind of response youâd been expectingâand dreading.
"You sure? No oneâs bothering you?"
The three little dots indicating he was typing popped up, then disappeared, then reappeared again. Finally, he sent: "Iâm fine. Just come back soon, okay?"
You stared at the screen for a long moment, conflicted. On one hand, you knew Ni-ki well enough by now to recognize when he wasnât telling you the whole truth. On the other hand, pushing him for answers over text wouldnât get you anywhere.
"I will," you typed back. "Just hang in there."
When you finally returned to school a few days later, you felt a strange mixture of relief and unease. As much as you hated being away, a small part of you worried about what youâd find when you got back.
Walking through the hallways felt like stepping into a space that had shifted slightly in your absence. You noticed the usual groups clustered together, their laughter echoing through the halls. But as your eyes scanned the crowd, you couldnât find Ni-ki anywhere.
When you reached your locker, you spotted one of his friendsâsomeone youâd occasionally seen him study with. You hesitated before calling out, âHey, have you seen Ni-ki?â
The guy looked up, his face shadowed with something you couldnât quite place. âHeâs in the library,â he said after a moment. âHeâs been there a lot lately.â
You nodded, thanking him before heading in that direction. The library was quieter than usual, the muffled hum of voices and the faint rustle of pages filling the air. It didnât take long to spot Ni-ki, sitting at a table in the far corner, his head down as he scribbled something into a notebook.
âNi-ki,â you called softly as you approached.
He looked up, and for a split second, relief flashed across his face. Then, just as quickly, it was gone, replaced by his usual reserved expression. âHey,â he said, closing his notebook and sitting up straighter. âYouâre back.â
âI am,â you said, pulling out a chair and sitting across from him. âWhatâs been going on? And donât say ânothing,â because I know thatâs not true.â
Ni-ki hesitated, his fingers fidgeting with the corner of his notebook. âItâs⊠not a big deal,â he finally said, his voice low. âJust the usual stuff.â
Your jaw tightened. Youâd expected as much, but hearing it still made your blood boil. âWhat happened?â
He sighed, glancing around to make sure no one was listening. âTheyâve just been⊠pushing things a little more since you werenât here. Itâs fine, though. Iâm used to it.â
âUsed to it doesnât make it okay,â you said firmly. âDid anyone step in? Tell a teacher? Anything?â
Ni-ki shook his head. âNo one really noticed. Or if they did, they didnât care.â
Your fists clenched under the table. It was exactly what youâd feared, and it only made you more determined. âWell, Iâm back now,â you said, your voice steady. âAnd theyâre not getting away with it anymore. Not while Iâm around.â
Ni-ki looked at you, a flicker of somethingâgratitude, maybeâcrossing his face. âYou donât have to keep doing this, you know,â he said quietly. âStanding up for me all the time. Itâs not your responsibility.â
âItâs not about responsibility,â you replied, meeting his gaze. âI want to stand up. And no one deserves to feel like theyâre alone in this.â
âThanks,â Ni-ki said eventually, his voice barely above a whisper.
You gave him a small smile. âAnytime.â
--
It started out subtlyâso subtle, in fact, that you almost missed it the first few times. Youâd grown so used to being the one to step in, to speak up, to push back when people crossed the line with Ni-ki, that it became instinctive. But recently, before you could even open your mouth or move to intervene, something in Ni-kiâs demeanor had started to change.
The next time someone shoved him in the hallway, you caught it. The twist in his face.
It wasnât the usual resignation or silent frustration youâd seen before. No, this was different. His jaw tightened, his eyes sharp and focused, his posture just a fraction straighter. He still stumbled when they shoved him, still dropped his books, but there was a flicker of defiance thereâa spark you hadnât noticed before.
âWatch where youâre going, idiot,â one of the bullies muttered, smirking as they turned to walk off.
But before you could even step in, Ni-ki straightened up, brushing himself off. His voice was quiet but firm as he said, âMaybe you should watch where youâre going.â
It wasnât loud, and it certainly wasnât a full-on confrontation, but it was enough to make the bully pause for a moment, glancing back over their shoulder with narrowed eyes. Ni-ki didnât flinch. He just stared at them, steady and unyielding, until they scoffed and walked away.
You stood frozen for a moment, caught off guard. This wasnât like himânot the Ni-ki youâd grown used to protecting, the one who usually avoided confrontation at all costs.
âNi-ki,â you said, catching up to him as he bent down to pick up his books. âWhat was that?â
He glanced up at you, his expression unreadable. âWhat was what?â
âThat,â you said, gesturing vaguely toward the hallway where the bullies had just left. âYou⊠you stood up for yourself.â
He shrugged, tucking his books under his arm. âYeah, well⊠I figured I might as well try it.â
You blinked, surprised by how nonchalant he sounded. âTry it?â
He paused, glancing at you with a small, almost shy smile. âIâve been watching you, you know. How you donât let people push youâor anyone elseâaround. It made me think⊠maybe I could do that too.â
For a moment, you didnât know what to say. You felt a strange mix of pride and worry bubbling in your chest. Pride, because seeing Ni-ki finally stand up for himself felt like a victory. Worry, because you knew how cruel people could be when they were challenged.
âWell,â you said finally, your voice soft, âIâm glad youâre trying. But you know you donât have to do it alone, right? Iâve got your back.â
He nodded, his smile growing a little. âI know. But⊠it feels kind of good. Not letting them have all the power.â
From that day on, you started noticing it more often.
The next time someone muttered something cruel under their breath as Ni-ki walked past, he didnât just look away. He turned, his voice steady as he asked, âWhat did you just say?â It wasnât a shout, wasnât a threat, but the sheer confidence in his tone was enough to catch them off guard.
And the next time someone knocked his books out of his hands, Ni-ki didnât just bend down to pick them up. He straightened up first, meeting their gaze with an icy calmness that made them hesitate before walking off.
You watched it all unfold with a mixture of admiration and concern.
One afternoon, after class, you found yourself walking with him again, the two of you deep in conversation about one of the crime novels youâd both been reading. As you turned the corner, you saw one of the usual suspectsâone of the guys whoâd made Ni-kiâs life a nightmare for as long as you could remember.
The guy stepped into Ni-kiâs path, blocking his way. âHey, got a minute?â
You tensed immediately, ready to step forward, but Ni-ki held up a hand, stopping you.
âWhat do you want?â Ni-ki asked, his voice calm but firm.
The bully smirked, leaning in closer. âJust wondering how long itâll take before you crawl back into that little shell of yours. You think youâre tough now? That youâve got people to back you up?â
Ni-ki didnât even blink. âI think youâre wasting your time. Find someone else to bother.â
The smirk faltered for just a second, and that was all it took. The bully muttered something under his breath before walking away, clearly annoyed that Ni-ki hadnât given him the reaction he was hoping for.
As soon as the guy was out of earshot, you turned to Ni-ki, your eyes wide. âOkay, what was that? Who are you, and what have you done with the Ni-ki I know?â
He chuckled, rubbing the back of his neck. âI told you, Iâve been watching you. Guess I finally got tired of being the guy everyone picks on.â
You couldnât help but smile, your chest swelling with pride. âWell, Iâm glad youâre finding your voice. Just⊠donât get yourself in too much trouble, okay?â
âDonât worry,â he said, his smile soft but confident. âI know youâll be there to save me if I do.â
You chuckled at his confidence, feeling that familiar warmth bubble up inside you. âOf course,â you replied. âBut remember, you donât have to rely on me all the time. Youâve got this, Ni-ki.â
He met your gaze, his eyes bright with something that looked almost like gratitude, but with a touch of pride as well. âMaybe. But it feels good knowing Iâve got someone watching my back.â
You nodded, feeling your heart skip a beat. It wasnât just about protecting him anymoreâit was about seeing him stand up for himself, to fight back against the people who tried to bring him down. And even though you still couldnât shake the worry that the bullies would target him more now, you had a feeling that Ni-ki would be okay.
The days that followed were a mix of small victories. Youâd catch glimpses of him, the way his posture had changed, the confidence in the way he carried himself. Even when the bullies tried to get under his skin, he seemed to hold his own. And when they tried to escalate things, Ni-ki would either meet them with sharp words or simply walk away with his head held high, no longer letting their insults stick to him.
--
The day started like any otherâuntil you got to school.
The usual buzz of the morning crowd was replaced with an eerie silence. Police cars lined the front of the building, their lights casting flashes of red and blue against the gray morning sky. Students clustered in small groups near the gate, whispering to each other, their faces pale with unease.
You tightened your grip on your bag as you stepped closer, curiosity gnawing at you. Something had happenedâsomething big.
Spotting Natty near the lockers, you hurried over, catching her arm gently. âWhatâs going on? Why are the police here?â
Natty turned, her expression somber and anxious. âYou didnât hear?â
You shook your head, your stomach twisting. âNo. What happened?â
She glanced around nervously before leaning in closer. âTwo students have been reported missing,â she said in a low voice.
Your heart skipped a beat. âMissing? Who?â
Natty hesitated, her voice dropping even lower. âItâs those two guys⊠you know, the ones who usually mess with people. The ones whoââ
âThe ones who pick on peopleâ you finished for her, your voice barely above a whisper.
She nodded, her expression grim. âYeah. Them. Apparently, they didnât come home last night. Their parents called the school this morning, and now the police are involved.â
You stood there, processing her words. The two bulliesâknown for tormenting Ni-ki and plenty of other studentsâwere missing? The news left you unsettled, a mix of emotions swirling in your chest.
âWhat do you think happened to them?â you asked, your voice cautious.
Natty shrugged, glancing over at the police officers. âI donât know. Everyoneâs talking about it, but no one seems to know anything for sure. Some people are saying they mightâve run away, butâŠâ She trailed off, biting her lip.
âBut?â
She leaned in closer, her voice barely audible now. âBut people are also saying it doesnât feel like that. Theyâre saying itâs... suspicious.â
You frowned, your mind racing. Suspicious. The word lingered in your thoughts like a dark cloud. You couldnât help but think about Ni-kiâthe way heâd started standing up for himself, the way the bullies had been pushing back harder in recent weeks. And now, suddenly, they were gone?
âDo they have any leads?â you asked, trying to keep your voice steady.
Natty shook her head. âNot that Iâve heard. The police are just starting their investigation.â
You glanced around, your eyes scanning the crowd. Your thoughts immediately went to Ni-ki. Had he heard about this yet? How was he feeling? You knew the bullies had made his life miserable, but even so, this was⊠extreme.
âIâll catch up with you later,â you said, already stepping away.
Natty called after you, âWhere are you going?â
âTo check on someone,â you replied over your shoulder, your mind set on finding Ni-ki.
You searched the usual spotsâthe bench near the library, the quiet corner by the art roomâbut he was nowhere to be found. Finally, you spotted him by the vending machines, standing alone with his hands in his pockets.
âNi-ki,â you called softly as you approached.
He looked up, his expression unreadable. âHey.â
âDid you hear?â you asked, lowering your voice.
He nodded, his gaze dropping again. âYeah. Everyoneâs talking about it.â
You studied him for a moment, trying to gauge his emotions. He didnât look shocked or upsetâjust⊠thoughtful.
âHow are you feeling about it?â you asked gently.
He shrugged, his voice quiet. âI donât know. Itâs... weird. They were horrible to everyone, but this? Itâs⊠I donât know.â
You nodded, understanding the conflict in his tone.
âTheyâll figure it out,â you said, more to reassure yourself than him. âThe police are here, and theyâll get to the bottom of it.â
Ni-ki glanced at you, his eyes searching yours for a moment before he nodded. âYeah. I guess.â
You walked side by side with Ni-ki, the buzz of conversations and murmurs about the missing students fading into the background. He didnât seem as unsettled as you wouldâve expected. In fact, he looked⊠composed. Too composed. There was a calmness about him, a quiet confidence that hadnât been there before.
It wasnât like he didnât careâat least, you didnât think so. But he wasnât fidgeting or avoiding the topic like you might have imagined. Instead, he walked with his head held high, his steps deliberate.
You glanced at him, trying to gauge his mood. âYou seem⊠okay about all this,â you said carefully, not wanting to come off as accusing.
Ni-ki shrugged, his hands shoved deep into his pockets. âWhat do you mean?â
âI donât know,â you said, tilting your head. âItâs just⊠two people are missing. People who used to make your life hell, and you donât look⊠bothered.â
He stopped walking for a moment, turning to face you. His lips curved into the faintest smile, but it didnât quite reach his eyes. âShould I be?â
The question caught you off guard. You blinked, unsure how to respond. âWell, I mean⊠itâs weird, right? Theyâre still people. Even if they were awful, itâs not like they deserved to⊠you know, vanish.â
Ni-ki held your gaze for a moment longer before looking away, his expression unreadable. âI guess Iâve just learned not to waste my energy on people like them,â he said, his voice steady. âThey made their choices. Itâs not my job to care.â
You frowned, his words sticking with you as you both continued walking. There was something about the way he spokeâcalm, measured, almost detachedâthat made you uneasy. But you didnât push him further. Ni-ki had grown a lot lately, standing up for himself in ways you hadnât expected. Maybe this was just part of that changeâhis way of not letting the past hold power over him anymore.
Still, you couldnât help but notice how his posture seemed different now. Straighter, more self-assured. He wasnât the same Ni-ki who used to avoid eye contact in the hallways or flinch at the sound of the bulliesâ voices. This Ni-ki was someone who carried himself with quiet confidence, someone who looked like he had nothing to fear.
And yet, you couldnât shake the feeling that there was something more to it. Something he wasnât saying.
You wanted to ask, to press him for answers, but something stopped you. Maybe it was the way his expression remained calm, as if daring you to question him. Or maybe it was the realization that you werenât sure you wanted to know.
âAnyway,â Ni-ki said, breaking the silence, âwhatâs your plan for the rest of the day?â
The abrupt shift in topic caught you off guard, but you decided to go with it. âNot much,â you said, adjusting your bag on your shoulder. âProbably just try to catch up on homework and maybe watch something later.â
He nodded, his smile softening into something more genuine. âSounds good. Let me know if you find a good mystery to watch.â
âWill do,â you replied, smiling back.
As you parted ways and headed to your respective classes, you couldnât help but glance back at him. The way he walked, the way he carried himself nowâit was almost like he was a completely different person.
And though you didnât say it out loud, the unease lingered. There was something about Ni-ki that had changed, something you couldnât quite put your finger on. And as much as you wanted to believe it was just confidence.. a small, nagging part of you wondered if it was something more.
After school, you found yourself lingering by the gate, waiting for Ni-ki. You werenât even sure why. Maybe it was just the need to talk to him again, to see if you could get a better read on what he was thinking.
He appeared a few minutes later, his bag slung over one shoulder and his usual calm expression in place. When he spotted you, his lips twitched into a small smile.
âWaiting for me?â he asked, tilting his head slightly.
You shrugged, trying to play it off. âJust thought we could walk together.â
âSure,â he said, falling into step beside you.
The walk home started out quiet, the kind of comfortable silence youâd gotten used to with him. But as you neared the park, you couldnât hold back your curiosity any longer.
âNi-ki,â you began carefully, âIâve been thinking about what you said earlier.â
He glanced at you, his expression unreadable. âWhat about it?â
âAbout not caring. About how itâs not your job to care about... people like them.â You hesitated, choosing your words carefully. âIt just feels like... I donât know, youâve changed a lot lately. Youâre more confident, and thatâs great, but... itâs like youâre not bothered by anything anymore.â
Ni-ki didnât respond right away. He kept walking, his gaze focused straight ahead, his expression calm. Finally, he sighed, his shoulders rising and falling.
âI guess I just realized thereâs no point in letting things get to me,â he said, his tone measured. âPeople like them... theyâre not worth my time. They never were.â
You frowned, your unease growing. âBut... donât you think itâs weird? That they just disappeared like that?â
He stopped walking, turning to face you. His eyes met yours, and for the first time, there was a flicker of something behind his calm exterior. Something darker.
âWhat are you trying to say?â he asked, his voice quiet but firm.
Your breath hitched, caught off guard by the sudden intensity in his gaze. âIâm not saying anything,â you said quickly, though your heart was racing. âIâm just... curious. Thatâs all.â
Ni-ki studied you for a moment longer before his expression softened, the faintest smile returning to his lips. âItâs probably nothing,â he said. âPeople like that... they always have enemies. Maybe someone else decided to deal with them.â
The way he said it sent a chill down your spine. He didnât sound defensive, or even particularly concerned. If anything, he sounded... amused.
You forced a smile, not wanting to push him further. âYeah, maybe,â you said, your voice quieter than you intended.
Ni-ki started walking again, and you followed, your mind racing with questions you didnât dare ask.
As the two of you walked further down the quiet street, Ni-ki suddenly turned toward his dorm building, stopping just before the steps. He looked at you with a hint of hesitation, but there was also that hopeful glint in his eyes that always managed to make your heart soften.
âHey,â he said casually, though his tone had a shy edge. âDo you⊠maybe want to come up? We could study together or something. I know exams are coming up, and itâs easier with company.â
You hesitated, clutching the strap of your bag. âI donât know⊠I should probably just head home and get some rest.â
Ni-kiâs face dropped slightly, and for a second, he looked like he was bracing for you to turn him down. But the way he glanced at youâhopeful and a little nervousâmade something inside you falter.
âAre you sure?â he asked, trying to sound nonchalant but failing miserably. âItâll be quiet. I promise I wonât distract you too much.â
You looked at him, at the way his bangs fell slightly into his eyes and the way he fidgeted with the strap of his own bag. He looked cute, and there was something so innocent about the way he asked, as if he genuinely just wanted to spend more time with you.
âAlright,â you finally said, relenting with a small smile. âIâll stay for a little while.â
The way his face lit up made it all worth it. A broad smile spread across his lips, and before you could react, he reached out, his hands gently finding their way to your waist as he guided you toward the door. His touch was firm yet careful, his hands warm even through the fabric of your jacket.
âCome on,â he said, his tone suddenly brighter as he led you inside the building. âItâs not too messy, I promise. Well⊠not that messy.â
You laughed softly, letting him lead you into the lobby and toward the elevator. There was something about the way he was actingâlighthearted and a little goofyâthat made your earlier unease fade just a bit.
When the elevator doors opened, Ni-ki stepped aside to let you in first, his hand briefly brushing against your lower back. He pressed the button for his floor, glancing at you with a grin. âIâll even let you pick the first topic we study. Fair deal?â
âDeal,â you said, shaking your head at him.
As the elevator climbed, you realized that, despite your earlier hesitation, you didnât really mind being here with him. There was something comforting about the way Ni-ki treated you, like you were the only person who really mattered to him in that moment.
The elevator dinged, and the two of you stepped out into the hallway. Ni-ki led the way to his room, opening the door with a flourish before stepping aside to let you in.
âWelcome to my humble abode,â he said, gesturing around with a playful smile.
You stepped inside, taking in the neat but lived-in space. His desk was cluttered with notebooks and textbooks, and there were a few random items scattered aroundâheadphones, a hoodie draped over the back of a chair, a half-empty mug on the windowsill.
âItâs cozy,â you said, setting your bag down by the door.
Ni-ki grinned. âThatâs code for âsmall,â isnât it?â
You laughed, shaking your head. âNo, I mean it. It feels⊠nice.â
âGood,â he said, closing the door behind you. âMake yourself comfortable. Iâll grab us some water, and then we can get started.â
As he busied himself in the corner of the room, you took a seat at his desk, letting yourself relax.
And as Ni-ki returned with two glasses of water and a bright smile, you couldnât help but think that maybe this was exactly what you needed.
Ni-ki handed you a glass of water, his smile warm and genuine, and you took it with a grateful nod. As you both sat down at his desk, the atmosphere felt surprisingly comfortable. The earlier tension had all but faded, replaced by a quiet energy between you two that made everything feel easy.
âSo,â Ni-ki began, pulling a notebook toward him, âwhat subject do you want to start with?â His eyes flickered toward you, waiting for your answer.
You considered for a moment. âI guess⊠letâs tackle history first? Thatâs the one Iâm struggling with the most.â
âHistory it is,â Ni-ki agreed, and there was a brief moment of silence as he pulled out his own materials, flipping through pages in his textbook. You glanced at the way he studiedâfocused but relaxed, as if heâd done this a hundred times before. His brow furrowed just a little when he concentrated, and you found yourself studying him without even realizing it.
He noticed after a second, a slight shift in his posture. âWhat? Is something wrong?â he asked, glancing up from his book.
âNo, no, I was just⊠thinking.â You gave him a small smile, hoping to ease whatever concern he might have had. âYouâre a good study buddy. Youâre very⊠focused.â
Ni-ki chuckled, scratching the back of his neck. âI try. Itâs just easier when you actually care about what youâre learning, you know?â
You nodded in agreement. The two of you dived into your history notes, bouncing ideas back and forth, helping each other fill in the blanks on a few tricky subjects. The more you talked, the more you realized how much you enjoyed this.
As the hours passed, you found that time seemed to slow down in Ni-kiâs presence. Every now and then, heâd glance up from his book and shoot you a little smile, making it hard to focus on anything else.
By the time you looked at the clock, it had already gotten late. You hadn't realized how much time had passed, so engrossed in studying and talking.
âWe should probably call it a night,â you said, stretching your arms above your head.
Ni-ki nodded, though his expression was a little reluctant. âYeah, I guess youâre right. Time really flew by.â He stood up, walking over to the desk and gathering his things. He paused for a moment, glancing back at you. âThanks for hanging out tonight. It was⊠really nice.â
You smiled at him, your heart warming at his words. âOf course. Iâm glad we did this.â
Ni-ki walked you to the door, his hand brushing yours for a brief moment as he reached for the handle. He opened the door, and as you stepped into the hallway, he stopped you.
âHey,â he said quietly, his voice softer than usual.
You turned to look at him, eyebrows raised in question.
âI just wanted to sayâŠâ He paused, as if thinking carefully about his words. âIâm glad youâre⊠in my life. You know, youâve really made things a lot easier for me.â
Your heart skipped a beat. The sincerity in his voice caught you off guard, and you werenât sure how to respond.
âIâm glad, too,â you managed, your voice a little quieter than intended. âI think we make a good team.â
Ni-kiâs lips curled into a small, genuine smile, and something about it made your chest feel lighter. He stepped closer, his hand briefly brushing your arm as if he wasnât sure what to do next.
You both stood there for a moment, before Ni-ki spoke again, his tone soft but teasing.
âSee you tomorrow, then?â
You nodded, feeling the smile tug at your own lips. âSee you tomorrow.â
The music in your ears drowned out most of the world around you as you walked through the dark streets, the beat lightening your steps as you bopped your head and hummed softly. It was one of those evenings when the city felt alive but distant, the dim glow of streetlights casting long shadows against brick walls and sidewalks.
You didnât notice the loud voice at first, too lost in the rhythm, but as it grew louder, it cut through the music, making you glance to your left. There, leaning against the wall of an old corner store, was a guy from your school.
You recognized him instantly. He was one of those guys who thrived on making others miserable. A bully. Loud, brash, and unapologetic about it. He was talking on his phone, his voice carrying through the quiet street.
When his gaze flicked toward you, you realized youâd been staring for too long. His face twisted in annoyance, and he barked, âWhat the hell are you looking at?â
Startled, you quickly shrugged, averting your gaze and picking up your pace. You didnât have time for his nonsense tonight. The plan was simple: get home, maybe text Ni-ki, and bury yourself under your covers.
But you hadnât made it more than a few steps when the street suddenly fell silent.
It was strange, almost unnerving. You frowned, pulling out one of your earbuds and glancing back over your shoulder.
Your breath caught in your throat.
The guy was still standing there, but something was wrong. His body was stiff, his shoulders trembling, and his head was tilted downward as if he were staring at his chest. Blood. Dark and glistening, it spilled from his mouth and dripped onto the pavement. His phone slipped from his hand and clattered to the ground.
Your instincts screamed at you to run, to do anything but stay frozen, but your feet refused to move. You could only watch in horror as his wide, terrified eyes met yours.
He tried to say something, his lips moving, but all that came out was a wet, gurgling sound.
And then you saw it.
Behind him, a figure emerged from the shadows, tall and menacing. They wore dark clothes, a hood pulled up to obscure most of their features, but what stood outâwhat sent chills racing down your spineâwas the white mask. A smooth, expressionless face with hollow, soulless eyes staring straight at you.
In their gloved hand, they held a knife, the blade dripping with fresh blood.
Your heart pounded in your chest as panic set in. You were about to scream, about to do anything to snap yourself out of the shock, but the figure stepped forward, their movements deliberate and calm, as if they had all the time in the world.
The bullyâs body crumpled to the ground, his lifeless eyes still locked in an expression of pure fear. The blood pooled beneath him, staining the pavement a deep crimson.
The figure didnât move toward youânot yet. They just stood there, tilting their head slightly as if studying you, waiting to see what you would do.
Every instinct in your body screamed for you to run, but your legs felt like they were made of lead.
This canât be real, you thought. This canât be happening.
But it was. And now, the figure took one slow, deliberate step in your direction.
Run. You had to run. Now.
Your body finally responded, adrenaline flooding your veins as you stumbled backward, nearly tripping over your own feet. You turned and bolted down the darkened street, your breath coming in ragged gasps. The earbuds still dangling from your ears blasted music, a sharp contrast to the pounding of your heartbeat and the terror consuming you.
You didnât dare look back.
Your feet hit the pavement hard, the sound echoing in the empty streets as you raced forward, unsure of where you were going. The only thought in your mind was get away. The quiet of the street felt suffocating, broken only by the occasional flicker of a streetlight.
But then you heard it.
Footsteps.
Slow, deliberate, and eerily calm.
Whoever they were, they werenât runningâthey were following you. Like they knew you couldnât escape.
You risked a glance over your shoulder, and your stomach dropped. The figure was still there, their white mask glowing faintly under the dim streetlights. They werenât far, and their steady pace somehow made it worse. They didnât need to run. They knew they had the upper hand.
âNo, no, no...â you whispered to yourself, your voice shaky. You turned a sharp corner into a narrower street, your eyes darting around for any sign of helpâa lit window, a passerby, anything. But there was no one. Just endless shadows.
You spotted an alley up ahead and ducked into it, pressing yourself against the wall as you tried to steady your breathing. You ripped your earbuds out, desperate to hear every sound around you.
For a moment, there was silence. The footsteps had stopped.
You strained your ears, listening for any hint of movement. The sound of your own breathing felt deafening in the stillness.
And then, softly, the unmistakable scrape of a shoe against the pavement.
Your heart nearly stopped as you realized they were closeâtoo close.
The figure stepped into the mouth of the alley, their tall silhouette illuminated by the faint glow of a distant streetlight. They turned their head slowly, scanning the space.
You pressed yourself harder against the wall, willing yourself to disappear. Please donât see me, please donât see me.
But then they tilted their head, and you knew theyâd found you.
A sharp wave of panic crashed over you, and before you could think, your legs moved on their own. You bolted deeper into the alley, praying it would lead somewhereâanywhereâbut as you reached the end, your heart sank.
A dead end.
You spun around, your back pressed against the cold brick wall as the figure approached, their movements unhurried, deliberate. The knife in their hand gleamed faintly in the dim light, still slick with blood.
âW-what do you want?â you stammered, your voice barely above a whisper. Your hands shook as you clenched them at your sides, trying to mask the terror in your chest.
The figure didnât answer, their masked face tilting slightly as if amused by your fear. The silence between you was suffocating, the sound of your ragged breathing echoing in the narrow alley. You pressed yourself harder against the wall, your body trembling as their slow, deliberate footsteps brought them closer.
âPlease,â you tried again, your voice cracking. âI wonât tell anyone. Justâjust let me go.â
Still, no response. They stopped just a few feet away, the knife glinting under the faint light. The blade wasnât just bloodiedâit was still dripping. Fresh.
You swallowed hard, your mind racing for a way out. Running wasnât an option. The alley was too narrow, and they were blocking your only escape.
Then, the figure did something that made your stomach drop. Slowly, they reached up with their free hand and tapped the edge of the maskâright where the mouth would be. A deliberate, mocking gesture.
The message was clear: Donât scream.
Your body froze as dread sank into your chest.
Your breathing hitched as the figure suddenly surged forward, their free hand grabbing your wrists and slamming them against the cold brick wall. You winced at the force, the impact sending a sharp sting up your arms.
"Let go!" you cried, struggling against their iron grip, but it was no use. Their hands were strongâtoo strongâand no matter how much you writhed or twisted, you couldnât break free.
The knife gleamed dangerously close to your side, but it wasnât moving. Instead, the figure leaned in, their mask mere inches from your face.
âWhy are you doing this?â you hissed, your voice shaking but desperate.
They didnât answer. Instead, they tilted their head, as if observing you up close, and the silent scrutiny sent a shiver down your spine. Their breathing was steady, calmâeerily so, given the situation.
You turned your head away, refusing to meet their hollow gaze, but their grip on your wrists tightened, forcing you to look back at them.
âStop,â you choked out, your voice barely above a whisper now. âPlease.â
They leaned in even closer, the blank mask filling your vision. The faint scent of something metallicâbloodâwafted into your nose, and you froze completely, your body trembling under their hold.
You could feel the faint pressure of their breath through the mask, warm and unnervingly slow.
Then, they did something that made your stomach twist. They tilted their head down slightly, as if inspecting you more closely, and the knife in their other hand gently traced along the brick wall beside your face, the sound sharp and deliberate.
âWhy are you so scared?â they finally murmured, their voice low, distorted, and almost playful. The modulated tone sent a chill through your entire body. Your eyes widened at the sound. âWho are you?â you managed to croak, but they ignored your question.
They leaned even closer, their voice dropping to a whisper. âYouâve been watching people. Reading their actions. Studying them.â
Your heart stopped. How could they possibly know that?
The knife stopped moving, the tip resting against the wall now as they tilted their head again, as if amused by your reaction.
âYouâre just like me,â they murmured, their voice soft but laced with something dangerous. âArenât you curious about what happens next?â
The words struck you like a blow, and you felt the air leave your lungs. âIâm nothing like you,â you spat, trying to summon any ounce of courage left in you.
The figure chuckled softlyâa sound that was more unsettling than anything elseâand finally stepped back, releasing your wrists. You crumpled slightly against the wall, your hands trembling as you pulled them to your chest.
They stood there for a moment, watching you. And then, without a word, they turned and walked away, their figure disappearing into the darkness once more.
You didnât move, your body frozen in place as your mind raced. Their words echoed in your head.
Youâre just like me.
What did they mean?
For a moment, you stood there, too stunned to move, your legs shaking beneath you. The silence in the alley was deafening now, the absence of their presence almost as terrifying as their arrival.
Finally, your body caught up with your mind. You bolted.
You ran down the street, not caring where you were going, your feet pounding against the pavement. Every shadow felt like it was reaching for you, every flicker of light a reminder of that gleaming knife.
When you finally stopped, you realized you were standing in front of your building. Your hands trembled as you fumbled for your keys, barely managing to unlock the door before stumbling inside.
You slammed the door behind you, locking it quickly and leaning against it as you tried to catch your breath. Your heart was still racing, and the image of the masked figure burned into your mind wouldnât leave.
You stood there for what felt like an eternity, your back pressed against the door, fighting to steady your breath. The air in the hallway was suffocating, the stillness unnerving. Your pulse thudded in your ears, too loud, too fast, as you struggled to ground yourself in reality.
The sound of your own heartbeat felt like a drum, drowning out every other noise. You closed your eyes for a moment, willing the panic to subside, but the image of the masked figureâthose hollow, unfeeling eyesâkept flashing in your mind. You could almost still feel the coldness of their grip on your wrists, the steel of the knife pressed against the air between you.
No, no, you couldn't think about that. You had to focus on something else.
Your hands were shaking so badly that when you tried to take off your shoes, you nearly tripped over them. You steadied yourself against the wall, reaching for your phone in your pocket. Your hands felt clammy as you unlocked it, eyes scanning the screen. You thought about calling someoneâanyoneâbut who could you even call? You had no idea what just happened, who that person was, or why you were targeted.
You tapped your messages, but the familiar names on your screen did little to comfort you. Your fingers hovered over Ni-kiâs name for a moment, but you hesitated. You didnât want to scare him. What would you even say?
You knew heâd be worried, and maybe thatâs exactly what you needed. But not yet.
You let out a long, shaky breath, and after a moment of indecision, you tucked the phone back into your pocket. You needed to calm down. You couldnât let yourself spiral.
Your eyes flicked to the window, the dim glow from the streetlights casting long shadows into the room. Every movement, every flicker of light outside seemed to twist your nerves tighter. You felt like you were being watched.
Was it paranoia?
You couldnât stay locked inside forever. But you couldnât leave either. Not now.
You walked to the window and pulled the blinds slightly aside, peering out. The street below was quiet, eerily so. But there was something off about it now. Something unsettling.
Was this your fault? Was it something you'd done or seen that made you a target?
You flinched as your phone buzzed in your pocket, snapping you out of your thoughts. Your heart skipped a beat, but when you checked, it was just a message from Yunaânothing urgent. You let out a breath of relief, your hands still trembling slightly.
You wanted to scream. To make sense of it all. But something told you that doing so would only make things worse.
--
The next morning, you woke up to a sense of dread still hanging in the air, the events from last night haunting your every thought. You had barely slept, every small noise in the dark sending your heart into a frantic beat. As you stumbled out of bed, you tried to shake the feeling off, but it lingered like a shadow.
You grabbed your phone, your fingers trembling slightly as you scrolled through your notifications. And then, your stomach dropped.
The headline was everywhere.
Student Found Murdered in Alley; Police Investigating
You stared at the screen, the words blurring as you read and reread the article, your hands shaking. They had found the body of the guy from last nightâthe one who had been leaning against the wall when the figure had attacked him. Blood had poured from his mouth just before the figure disappeared into the shadows.
But now he was dead.
The report didnât offer many details yet, but the police were investigating, and they had a few leadsâseeing if they found any potential witnesses. You clenched your fists, a sick feeling bubbling in your stomach as you read the lines again, trying to steady your nerves.
You were a witness.
You were standing right there when it happened, not even ten feet away. But you couldnât bring yourself to tell anyone. The thought of speaking up made your stomach churn. What could you even say? That youâd seen a masked figure with a bloody knife standing over the body, and then youâd just run? That youâd been too scared to do anything but watch?
No, you couldnât. It felt wrong. Almost like you were too close to the danger.
For a moment, you thought about calling Ni-ki. Heâd want to know. Heâd be concerned. But even the thought of telling him made you hesitate. You didnât want to burden him with this. And besides, you didnât even know what to say to him. How would he react?
Something inside you whispered that it was better to stay quiet. For now, at least. You didnât know why. Maybe it was fear. Maybe it was guilt. But you couldnât shake the nagging feeling that speaking out would only make things worse.
As you turned off your phone and got ready for school, the weight of the secret pressed down on you like an iron fist. The urge to tell someone gnawed at you, but somethingâmaybe self-preservation, maybe the fear of the unknownâstopped you from speaking.
You didnât know what kind of person that made you, but at that moment, all you could think about was survival.
And that meant staying silent.
You spotted Ni-ki waiting for you near the school gates, his back leaning casually against the wall. At first, you almost didnât recognize him. Gone were the oversized hoodies and the unassuming posture. Today, he wore a sharp black jacket, his shirt tucked in, and his usually messy hair was swept back, revealing more of his face. The change was striking, and it caught you off guard.
When he saw you approaching, he straightened up, slipping his hands into his pockets with an easy confidence youâd never seen before. There was a glint in his eyes that made your stomach flip.
âMorning,â he greeted smoothly, his tone lighter than usual. His gaze swept over you briefly before he added, âYou look cute today.â
The comment hit you like a bolt out of the blue, and you felt your cheeks flush instantly. âW-what?â you stammered, staring at him wide-eyed. Ni-ki wasnât the type to flirtâor, at least, you didnât think he was.
He chuckled at your reaction, his lips curling into a small, amused smile. âRelax. Iâm just being honest.â
You ducked your head, pretending to fumble with your bag to hide the warmth spreading across your face. âWell⊠thanks, I guess,â you mumbled, trying to compose yourself.
The two of you fell into step together, chatting idly as you walked toward the school building. Ni-ki seemed so at ease, more relaxed than youâd ever seen him.
But as the two of you passed through the crowded hallway, you noticed somethingâevery time someone called out to him, a snide remark or a mocking laugh in their tone, Ni-kiâs shoulders would stiffen ever so slightly.
âHey, Ni-ki, looking sharp today!â someone sneered from behind, the tone far from genuine.
âTrying to impress someone? Not like anyone cares,â another voice added with a laugh.
You glanced over at him, expecting to see some hint of his reactionâannoyance, discomfort, maybe even the faint twist of hurt you used to notice in his expression when he was picked on. But before you could catch anything, Ni-ki turned to you with that same easy smile, his voice light and unaffected.
âSo, whatâs the plan for today?â he asked as if nothing had happened, steering the conversation effortlessly away from the taunts.
You frowned slightly, feeling like something was off. His smile was convincing, but you knew him well enough to sense that it didnât reach his eyes. There was something guarded behind that mask of confidence, a wall he didnât want youâor anyone elseâto see behind.
âAre you okay?â you asked carefully, your voice low enough that no one else could hear.
Ni-kiâs smile didnât falter, but there was a flicker of something in his eyesâbrief, almost imperceptible. âWhy wouldnât I be?â he replied smoothly, tilting his head at you like the question itself was unnecessary.
You wanted to press further, but the bell rang, cutting off any chance of continuing the conversation.
As you headed to class together, you couldnât help but steal a few glances at him. Ni-ki had changedâthere was no denying that. He seemed stronger, more confident, even⊠untouchable in a way. But that didnât mean he wasnât still carrying the weight of what heâd been through.
And as much as you wanted to believe his smile, something in you knew that the Ni-ki you were walking with now wasnât the same one youâd first met.
The days passed, and Ni-kiâs transformation became even more apparent. He wasnât just confident nowâhe was bold, almost playful in the way he interacted with you. And you couldnât deny the effect it had on you.
âMorning,â he greeted one day, appearing behind you so suddenly that you nearly dropped your books. You turned to glare at him, clutching your chest as your heart raced from the surprise.
âNi-ki, can you not sneak up on me like that?â you huffed, glaring half-heartedly.
He smirked, leaning down to your eye level, far too close for comfort. âWhat, canât handle a little excitement in the morning?â he teased, his voice laced with a softness that made your cheeks burn.
You looked away, muttering under your breath, but it only seemed to amuse him. Without asking, he reached for your bag, slinging it over his shoulder like it was the most natural thing in the world.
âHey! I can carry my own bag,â you protested, grabbing for the strap.
Ni-ki dodged your hand effortlessly, his smirk growing. âI know. But I want to. Let me be a gentleman for once,â he said, winking at you.
You huffed again, but the way your cheeks warmed betrayed how much it flustered you.
It wasnât just the small gestures like carrying your bag that got to you. Ni-ki always seemed to know just how to toe the line between teasing and sincere, making your heart race in ways you hadnât expected. Sometimes, heâd lean casually against the locker next to yours, his proximity far too close to be casual.
âHave you ever read this one?â he asked once, holding out a crime novel you hadnât even heard of. âI thought of you when I saw it.â
You blinked at the book in his hands, touched by the gesture. âYou thought of me?â
He grinned, tilting his head. âWell, yeah. Itâs about solving crimes. Sound familiar?â
You tried not to blush at his words, but his teasing gaze made it impossible.
The more time you spent with him, the more you noticed the little things he didâbringing you snacks during breaks, texting you links to new crime documentaries, and inviting you over to his dorm room for movie nights.
Those nights were some of your favorite moments, even if they made you nervous. The two of you would sit close together on the small couch, a bowl of popcorn between you as you watched horror movies. Inevitably, youâd end up dozing off halfway through, only to wake up hours later, cuddled up against his chest.
The first time it happened, youâd pulled away so quickly you nearly fell off the couch. âI-Iâm sorry! I didnât mean toââ
Ni-ki just laughed softly, brushing a strand of hair from your face. âItâs fine. You looked comfortable,â he said, his tone so gentle it made your heart ache.
Still, the memory of waking up to the sound of his steady heartbeat, feeling the warmth of his arms around you, stayed with you long after.
You couldnât deny how Ni-ki made you feel. His presence was becoming something you looked forward toâhis teasing, his warmth, his surprising thoughtfulness.
He was always thereâwaiting for you by the gates in the morning, walking you to your classes, and staying by your side during breaks. His confidence had grown, but so had his charm. He seemed to know just what to say to make your heart skip a beat, leaving you flustered and unsure how to respond.
One afternoon, the two of you were walking out of the library. Ni-ki was carrying your books again despite your protests, and the late afternoon sun cast a warm glow over the campus.
âSo,â he began, his voice casual but laced with that teasing edge youâd come to expect, âare you ever going to admit you like spending time with me, or do I have to keep carrying your books until you do?â
You turned to him, startled by his boldness, and saw the playful smirk tugging at his lips. âIâwhat?!â
Ni-ki chuckled, leaning in slightly as he walked beside you. âYou heard me,â he said, his voice soft but teasing. âYou donât have to be so shy about it. I mean, I am pretty great company.â
Your face burned, and you looked away, clutching your bag tightly. âDonât flatter yourself,â you muttered, though your tone lacked any real bite.
His laugh was soft but warm, and it only made your cheeks grow hotter. âIâm just saying whatâs true,â he said, his voice lowering as he added, âYouâre cute when you get flustered, you know that?â
You didnât respond, too busy trying to keep your heart from pounding out of your chest.
Later that evening, you found yourself at his dorm room again, another movie night heâd somehow convinced you to attend. As usual, heâd picked a horror filmâone of his favorites, he said.
The room was dimly lit, the flickering glow of the TV the only source of light. You sat next to him on the small couch, your knees almost touching.
Halfway through the movie, a particularly tense scene made you jump, and without thinking, you grabbed onto Ni-kiâs arm.
âScared?â he asked, his tone teasing but not unkind.
You quickly let go, crossing your arms over your chest. âNo,â you said stubbornly, though the way your heart raced said otherwise.
Ni-ki laughed softly, leaning closer to you. âItâs okay to be scared. You can hold onto me if you want,â he said, his voice dropping just enough to make your breath catch.
You glanced at him, your cheeks burning again, and quickly looked back at the screen. âIâll be fine,â you muttered, trying to ignore how close he was.
As the movie went on, though, the tension eased, and the warmth of Ni-kiâs presence lulled you into a sense of comfort. Before you knew it, your eyes were growing heavy, and the soft sound of his breathing beside you was the last thing you remembered before you drifted off.
When you woke up, the TV was off, and the room was quiet. You blinked groggily, realizing you were leaning against Ni-kiâs chest again, your head resting just over his heart. His arm was draped lightly over your shoulder, holding you close.
You froze, your face heating up as you tried to process the situation. Slowly, you sat up, careful not to wake him, only to find him already awake, his eyes half-lidded and watching you with a soft smile.
âGood morning, sleepyhead,â he said, his voice low and teasing.
âIâI didnât mean to fall asleep,â you stammered, pulling away completely.
Ni-ki just shrugged, sitting up as well. âItâs fine,â he said, brushing it off like it was nothing. âYou looked comfortable.â
You buried your face in your hands, groaning softly. âThis is so embarrassingâŠâ
He chuckled, reaching out to gently nudge your shoulder. âRelax. I told you, itâs fine. You can fall asleep on me anytime.â
His words only made your blush deepen, and you quickly got up, mumbling something about needing to leave. Ni-ki walked you to the door, still smiling in that soft, knowing way that made your heart ache.
--
It was a typical day in the cafeteria, the loud hum of conversation filling the air as you sat with your friends, idly picking at your food. The topic of discussion ranged from schoolwork to weekend plans, and you were halfway through telling a funny story when the sound of a tray nearly crashing to the ground caught your attention.
You looked up to see Ni-ki, standing awkwardly as he tried to steady himself after nearly colliding with a group of girls near the lunch line. His tray wobbled precariously, but he caught it just in time, flashing the girls an apologetic smile before quickly stepping aside.
The girls giggled, whispering to one another as Ni-ki walked off, looking slightly flustered. You could almost see the faint hint of red on his cheeks, though he composed himself quickly and made his way toward his usual spot.
âThatâs Ni-ki, right?â one of your friends, Natty, said, nudging you with her elbow.
You blinked, realizing your friends were now watching him. âYeah,â you said nonchalantly, though your gaze lingered on him as he passed by.
âHeâs gotten so handsome lately,â another friend chimed in, resting her chin on her hand as she stared after him. âI mean, look at him! The hair, the way heâs dressing now⊠I swear, itâs like he had a total glow-up overnight.â
You felt your cheeks heat up, and you quickly looked down at your plate, hoping no one would notice.
âHeâs always been cute,â Natty said, shrugging. âBut now? Itâs like⊠heâs confident. And confidence is hot.â
âI heard heâs been helping out in some of his classes too,â another friend added. âLike, tutoring and stuff. Smart and good-looking? Talk about the whole package.â
You tried to focus on your food, but the conversation buzzed around you, and you couldnât help but feel a strange twinge in your chest as your friends continued to gush over Ni-ki.
âHey,â Natty said suddenly, leaning closer to you. âYouâve been hanging out with him a lot lately, havenât you? Whatâs that about?â
Your head shot up, eyes wide. âWhat? No, weâre just⊠friends,â you said quickly, waving off her question. âHe likes crime novels, and we talk about them sometimes. Thatâs all.â
âJust friends?â Natty teased, raising an eyebrow. âAre you sure? Because he definitely looks at you like youâre more than just a friend.â
Your heart skipped a beat at her words, and you frowned, shaking your head. âYouâre imagining things.â
But even as you said it, you couldnât shake the memory of Ni-kiâs lingering glances, the way he leaned closer when he spoke to you, or how his hand would sometimes brush against yours when he handed you something.
Across the cafeteria, Ni-ki had taken a seat by himself, but before he started eating, his eyes flicked in your direction. It was only for a moment, but it was enough to make your stomach flip.
Natty noticed too, smirking as she nudged you again. âSee? I told you. Heâs totally into you.â
You groaned, burying your face in your hands. âCan we please change the subject?â
Your friends laughed, but they eventually let it go, moving on to other topics. Still, you couldnât help but steal a glance at Ni-ki again, only to find him smiling softly to himself as he ate.
And for some reason, that little smile made your heart race even more than it already was.
The day had dragged on, the sun was low on the horizon as you started your walk home, the familiar path quiet except for the occasional car passing by. You had just popped in your earbuds when the sound of hurried footsteps broke through the music.
Frowning, you glanced over your shoulder, only to see Ni-ki sprinting toward you, waving one arm while clutching his bag with the other. His glasses were slightly crooked, his hair a little disheveled from the run, but he wore that familiar smile that seemed to make your day just a little brighter.
âWait up!â he called, slightly breathless as he closed the distance between you.
You stopped, giving him time to catch his breath. âYou okay there, track star?â you teased as he bent over, hands on his knees, trying to steady his breathing.
âYeah,â he panted, straightening up and flashing you a grin. âJust⊠didnât want to lose you before I asked.â
âAsked what?â you said, tilting your head.
He shifted his bag higher on his shoulder. âDo you want to come over and study? I mean, if youâre not busy or anything. I thought we could go over some of that exam stuff together, maybe watch something afterâŠâ
You raised an eyebrow at him, suppressing a smile. âYou ran all the way here to ask me that?â
Ni-ki shrugged, a faint pink dusting his cheeks as he looked away. âWell⊠yeah. It seemed important.â
You chuckled softly, noticing how his glasses were sitting askew on his face from the sprint. Without thinking, you stepped closer, reaching up to gently adjust them. âThere,â you said, your voice softer now. âThatâs better.â
Ni-ki blinked at you, clearly startled by the gesture, his lips parting as if he wanted to say something but couldnât find the words. For a moment, he just stood there, looking at you with an expression you couldnât quite placeâsomething warm, something soft, something that made your heart skip.
You cleared your throat, stepping back and turning toward the direction of his dorm building. âAlright, letâs go,â you said, trying to ignore the sudden heat rising to your face.
Ni-ki followed after you, his footsteps light but quick, and you didnât notice the way his eyes lingered on you as he walked behind. There was a small, almost shy smile on his face, one he didnât bother hiding now that you werenât looking.
By the time you reached the building, the sky had darkened, the streetlights flickering on. Ni-ki held the door open for you, letting you step in first, and as you made your way toward the stairs, you felt his presence behind youâquiet but steady.
âYouâve really got a thing for last-minute plans, huh?â you said, glancing back at him with a teasing smile.
âOnly with you,â he replied smoothly, his tone light, but there was a glimmer of sincerity in his eyes that caught you off guard.
You laughed, shaking your head. âYeah, yeah. Letâs see if you can actually focus on studying this time.â
Ni-ki just grinned, following you up the stairs, his heart racing for reasons that had nothing to do with the earlier sprint.
The moment you stepped into Ni-kiâs apartment, you were greeted by the faint scent of laundry detergent and something sweetâprobably the remnants of whatever he had for breakfast that morning.
âMake yourself at home,â he said, slipping off his shoes and gesturing toward his room.
You followed him in, setting your bag down on the floor.
âAlright,â Ni-ki said, plopping down onto the floor and pulling out his notebook. âLetâs get this over with before my brain decides to shut off completely.â
You laughed, sitting down across from him and pulling out your own notes. âYouâre the one who wanted to study, remember?â
âYeah, yeah,â he muttered, flipping through his book. âJust donât let me slack off too much.â
For a while, the two of you worked in relative silence, the sound of pages turning and pens scratching against paper filling the room. Every now and then, one of you would ask a question, leading to brief discussions as you helped each other out.
âWait, is this right?â Ni-ki asked at one point, sliding his notebook over to you.
You leaned over to take a look, your brows furrowing as you scanned his work. âAlmost. You forgot to carry this number over here,â you said, pointing it out with the tip of your pen.
Ni-ki groaned, dropping his head onto the desk dramatically. âWhy is math like this? What did I ever do to deserve this kind of suffering?â
You couldnât help but laugh at his theatrics. âCome on, itâs not that bad. Youâre just overthinking it.â
âEasy for you to say,â he grumbled, lifting his head to look at you. âYouâre like a human calculator.â
âFlattery wonât get you out of this,â you teased, nudging his notebook back toward him.
He gave you a mock pout but picked up his pen again, dutifully fixing his mistake.
A little while later, you were both leaning back against the bed, taking a break as you sipped on the canned drinks Ni-ki had grabbed from his fridge.
âOkay, serious question,â Ni-ki said, turning to you with a mischievous glint in his eye.
You raised an eyebrow, wary but intrigued. âWhat?â
âIf you had to choose between being stuck on a deserted island with me or having to solve a murder mystery with me, which one would you pick?â
You blinked at him, caught off guard by the random question. âUh⊠I donât know. What kind of murder mystery?â
âThe really dramatic kind,â he said, leaning closer with an exaggerated serious expression. âLots of twists, lots of danger. Like, weâd be running for our lives half the time.â
You pretended to think about it, tapping your chin. âIn that case⊠definitely the murder mystery. At least then Iâd have something to keep me entertained.â
Ni-ki gasped, clutching his chest like youâd just mortally wounded him. âWow. I see how it is. Iâm just boring company on a deserted island, huh?â
You laughed, nudging him playfully. âThatâs not what I said!â
âSure, sure,â he said, grinning as he took another sip of his drink. âIâll remember this the next time you need my help with something.â
The banter continued as you both returned to studying, the playful energy making the work feel less tedious. Ni-ki had a way of turning even the most mundane moments into something fun, and you found yourself smiling more often than not.
At one point, he leaned over to steal a glance at your notebook, his shoulder brushing against yours. âAre you sure this is right?â he asked, his voice low and teasing.
âYes, itâs right,â you said, rolling your eyes. âYou can double-check it if you donât believe me.â
He smirked, leaning closer. âNah, I trust you. Youâre too smart to get it wrong.â
The compliment, paired with his proximity, made your cheeks heat up, and you quickly looked away, focusing on your notebook to hide your reaction.
Ni-ki noticed, of course. He always noticed. But instead of teasing you further, he simply chuckled and went back to his own work, a satisfied smile playing on his lips.
After a while, Ni-ki let out a long sigh, dropping his pen dramatically onto his notebook. âIâm officially done. I canât stare at numbers and letters any longer without my brain exploding.â
You glanced at him, amused. âYouâre giving up already? I thought you wanted to study.â
âI did,â he said, flopping onto his back like a starfish. âBut now I want to do something fun. Come on, letâs play a game.â
You raised an eyebrow. âA game? Like what?â
He sat up quickly, a mischievous grin spreading across his face. âOn my console. Iâve got a few multiplayer games. Weâll do a couple of roundsâyouâre not scared to lose, are you?â
âOh, please,â you said, rolling your eyes as you stood up to follow him to his console setup. âYouâre the one who should be worried.â
He smirked, grabbing two controllers and handing you one. âWeâll see about that.â
As the game loaded, you both got comfortable on the floor, sitting cross-legged with a pile of snacks within reach. The first match started, and immediately, the competitive energy between you two ignited.
âNi-ki, what are you doing?â you teased as his character fell off the map for the third time in a row. âYouâre not even trying, are you?â
His ears turned red as he adjusted his glasses, fidgeting with the hem of his hoodie. âI-Iâm just warming up! Wait until the next round; you wonât even stand a chance.â
You grinned, loving the way he stumbled over his words. âSure, sure. Keep telling yourself that.â
The next match started, and this time Ni-ki was clearly putting in more effort. He managed to take the lead, and when you lost the round, he leaned back with a triumphant smirk.
âLooks like youâre the one who should be worried,â he said, his tone dripping with playful confidence.
You felt your face heat up as you avoided his gaze, grumbling under your breath. âLucky shot. I wasnât even trying.â
âUh-huh,â he said, leaning a little closer to nudge your shoulder. âExcuses, excuses. Just admit Iâm better.â
You turned to glare at him, but the way his eyes sparkled with amusement made it hard to stay mad. Instead, you shoved his arm lightly. âDonât get too cocky, Ni-ki. Iâll destroy you in the next one.â
The back-and-forth continued as you played match after match, the teasing only escalating as the wins and losses stacked up on both sides. Every time you won, Ni-ki would blush and fidget, either pushing his glasses up his nose or tugging on the sleeves of his hoodie.
âSeriously, how are you so good at this?â he muttered after losing another round, his voice a mix of frustration and awe.
âI told you, you shouldâve been worried,â you said, grinning as you leaned back, basking in your victory.
But then Ni-ki got his revenge in the next game, and when you lost, he didnât hold back.
âAw, what happened?â he said, his voice dripping with mock concern. âI thought you were supposed to be good at this.â
You huffed, crossing your arms as your cheeks burned. âI just⊠got distracted, thatâs all.â
âSure,â he said, his grin widening. âKeep telling yourself that.â
The teasing was relentless, but you couldnât deny how much fun you were having. Even as you tried to avoid looking at him after his jabs, you could feel his gaze on you, warm and amused.
When the final match endedâNi-ki winning by a narrow marginâyou let out a dramatic groan, flopping onto your back. âUgh, I canât believe you beat me.â
He laughed, leaning over you slightly. âSee? I told you Iâd win eventually.â
You looked up at him, your pout fading as you saw the way his eyes crinkled at the corners from his smile. For a moment, you forgot all about the game, too caught up in the way he looked so happy and carefree.
âWell,â you said finally, sitting up and brushing some imaginary dust off your pants. âDonât get used to it. Next time, Iâm coming for that win.â
âIâm looking forward to it,â he said, his voice softening slightly.
You werenât sure what to say to that, so you busied yourself with tidying up the controllers and snack wrappers.
You glanced out the window and froze for a moment, realizing how dark it had gotten. The streetlights outside cast long, flickering shadows along the quiet road. Your heart dropped when you checked the time on your phone: 9:57 PM.
"Shit," you muttered under your breath, hurriedly grabbing your things and stuffing them into your bag. You barely noticed Ni-ki watching you, his head tilted curiously as he leaned back on his hands.
"Leaving already?" he asked, his tone light, though something in his voice felt... reluctant.
You slung your bag over your shoulder, giving him a quick, apologetic smile. "Yeah, I didnât realize how late it got. I need to get home before it gets any darker out. Iâll see you Monday, okay?"
Ni-ki opened his mouth as if to say something, but then stopped himself, giving you a small nod instead. "Alright, be careful."
You waved at him, muttering a quick, "Bye!" before rushing out of his dorm room and into the hallway.
The building was eerily quiet as you made your way outside, the cool night air hitting your face the moment you stepped through the door. You tightened your grip on your bag, glancing around the street. It was unsettling how empty it felt, but you didnât have time to dwell on it.
You walked quickly, your footsteps echoing on the pavement. Normally, youâd pop in your earbuds and listen to music to keep yourself company, but tonight, the thought of not hearing what was around you made your stomach twist. Instead, you kept your ears open, alert to every little sound.
The streets were mostly quiet, save for the occasional rustle of leaves or the faint hum of a car in the distance. Still, the shadows seemed to move differently tonight, stretching and shifting in ways that made your pulse quicken.
Your pace quickened as well. The faster you walked, the closer you got to home, where you could lock the door and feel safe.
Your heart leapt at the sound of footsteps echoing behind you. They were uneven, dragging slightly against the pavement. You froze mid-step, your breath catching in your throat, and slowly turned around.
A man stumbled a little ways behind you, his silhouette illuminated by the dim glow of a streetlamp. His gait was unsteady, his head lolling slightly to the side, and in his hand was a beer bottle, half-empty and dangling precariously.
The strong stench of alcohol hit you even from a distance, and your pulse eased slightly. Just a drunk guy, you told yourself.
Still, something about the way he moved unsettled you. His eyes seemed unfocused, yet he kept glancing up in your direction, like he was aware of you but trying not to be obvious about it.
You tightened your grip on your bag and turned back around, walking faster now. The sound of his footsteps didnât fade; if anything, they seemed to quicken as well.
Your stomach twisted, and you glanced back again. The man was closer this time, his lips curling into a sloppy smirk.
âHey!â he slurred, his voice loud and grating. âWhere you goinâ in such a hurry?â
You ignored him, your heart racing as you picked up your pace.
âHey! Iâm talkinâ to you!â he called out again, louder this time. You heard the sound of glass clinking, and out of the corner of your eye, you saw him waving the beer bottle at you.
Panic bubbled in your chest. You debated breaking into a sprint, but you didnât want to show fearâor worse, give him a reason to chase after you.
Instead, you ducked your head and turned sharply down a side street, hoping to lose him.
But the footsteps followed, faster now.
âHey! Donât walk away from me!â he shouted, his voice taking on an edge of irritation.
Your breathing quickened, your mind racing as you glanced around for an escape. The street was too empty, too quiet. There was no one to call for help, no open stores, no witnesses.
âCâmon, woman!â he slurred, closer than before. âJust talk to me for a second!â
He made your skin crawl, and without thinking, you broke into a run.
âHey!â you heard him shout behind you, his footsteps pounding against the pavement as he gave chase.
You turned a corner sharply, your chest heaving as you pushed yourself to go faster. Your legs burned, your bag bouncing against your back, but you didnât dare slow down.
When you glanced back over your shoulder, your stomach dropped. He was still following, his face twisted into a drunken snarl.
Your heart thundered as you looked ahead, desperately searching for somewhereâanywhereâto hide. Thatâs when you saw it: a narrow alleyway, tucked between two buildings.
Without thinking, you darted into it, pressing yourself against the wall and holding your breath. The shadows swallowed you whole, and you prayed he wouldnât notice where youâd gone.
The sound of his footsteps grew louder, then slower, until finally, they stopped.
âWhere the hellââ you heard him mutter, his voice slurred and irritated.
You peeked around the corner just in time to see him scratching his head and muttering to himself before walking away.
Relief flooded through you, and you let out a shaky breath, your back sliding against the wall as you sank to the ground.
Your hands trembled as you fumbled through your bag, desperately searching for your phone. After a frantic few moments, you realized with a sinking feelingâyouâd left it at Ni-kiâs place.
âDamn it,â you muttered under your breath, running a hand through your hair. You were too shaken to think straight, but you needed your phone. It wasnât safe to be out here without it.
With a reluctant sigh, you pushed yourself off the wall and started walking back toward Ni-kiâs dorm. The streets felt even quieter now, the darkness pressing in around you. Every step you took echoed loudly in your ears, and your heartbeat hadnât fully calmed from the earlier chase.
You were halfway there when a sudden shout split through the silence, followed by a loud, sickening thud.
You froze in place, your head snapping toward the source of the sound. It came from an alley just a few steps ahead.
Instinct told you to keep walking, to pretend you hadnât heard anything. But curiosityâmorbid and insistentâhad you inching closer to the alleyway. You peered into the darkness, your breath hitching as your eyes struggled to adjust.
At first, there was nothing. Just the oppressive blackness of the alley. You were about to turn away, deciding it wasnât worth it, when you heard a faint shuffle.
And then he stumbled out.
The drunk man.
Your stomach churned at the sight of himâhis steps were unsteady, but it wasnât alcohol this time. No, it was the knife protruding from his chest, the hilt gleaming faintly under the dim streetlights. Blood poured from the wound, staining his shirt and dripping onto the ground in thick, steady splatters.
Your mind blanked as you stared, your body frozen in place. He staggered a few steps closer before collapsing onto the pavement, his lifeless eyes staring up at the sky.
You opened your mouth to scream, but the sound died in your throat as your gaze flicked upward.
He was there.
Standing in the shadows of the alley, his white mask almost glowing against the darkness, he tilted his head at you in that familiar, unnerving way, and though you couldnât see his face, you could feel his eyes locked on you.
"Ah, sweetheart," his voice drawled, smooth and almost teasing. âWe really have to stop meeting like this.â
Your heart nearly stopped. Without thinking, you spun around, ready to runâbut you werenât fast enough.
Before you could take more than a step, his hand shot out, grabbing your arm and yanking you back with a terrifying amount of strength. You barely had time to gasp before he twisted you around, pinning you against the cold, rough wall of the alley.
You struggled, kicking and thrashing, but he caught both your wrists in one hand, pressing them firmly behind your back. His chest pressed against your back, trapping you in place, and you could feel the heat of his breath as he leaned in close to your ear.
âHe deserved it,â he whispered, his voice low and almost intimate. âDidnât you see the way he was looking at you? Following you? Touching you with his eyes like you were something he could take?â
You tried to protest, to tell him to let you go, but your voice refused to cooperate.
âYou should be thanking me,â he murmured, his tone laced with dark amusement. âIf it werenât for me, who knows what that disgusting piece of trash wouldâve done to you?â
His words sent a chill down your spine, but the way he said themâlike he truly believed heâd done you a favorâmade your stomach twist.
âYou should give me a reward, sweetheart,â he purred, his lips brushing dangerously close to your ear. âIâve been so good to you, havenât I? Taking care of all the people who hurt you.â
âL-let me go,â you managed to choke out, your voice trembling.
He chuckled softly, the sound sending a shiver down your spine. âOh, but Iâm not done yet,â he said, his grip on your wrists tightening slightly. âNot until you say it.â
âS-say what?â you stammered.
âThank you,â he said simply, his voice still teasing but with an edge that made it clear he wasnât joking. âGo on, sweetheart. Say thank you to your savior.â
You writhed in his grip, twisting and struggling to free yourself, but his hold was unyielding. Every movement you made only seemed to amuse him further.
âTsk, tsk,â he tutted softly, like a parent scolding a misbehaving child. âWhatâs this, sweetheart? Fighting me when Iâve done so much for you? Thatâs not very nice.â
âLet me go,â you hissed, your voice sharp despite the tremor in it.
Instead of responding, he shifted closer, his body pressing against yours as his free hand moved. You flinched, expecting the worst, but he simply brushed his gloved fingers against your neck, gently pushing your hair aside. The motion was slow, deliberateâalmost tender.
âYou really donât know how to behave, do you?â he murmured, his voice soft but laced with something darker. âHere I am, protecting you, keeping you safe, and you donât even say thank you. Instead, you fight me. Struggle against me. Like Iâm the bad guy.â
The words sent a chill down your spine, the weight of them sinking into your chest.
âI didnât ask for this!â you snapped, trying once more to pull your wrists free, but his grip only tightened.
âAh, but thatâs the beauty of it, sweetheart,â he said, his tone almost playful. âYou didnât have to. I wanted to do it. For you.â
His fingers trailed lightly over the nape of your neck, sending a shiver through your body that you couldnât control.
âYou donât understand,â he whispered, leaning in closer until his masked face was right beside yours. âI see you. Every single day. Youâre so⊠perfect. So pure. And theyâre not. They donât deserve to breathe the same air as you.â
âYouâre insane,â you spat, your voice shaking.
âMaybe,â he admitted with a dark chuckle. âBut Iâm your kind of insane.â
His hand slid down, brushing over your shoulder in a mockery of comfort. âSay it,â he murmured again, his voice barely above a whisper now. âSay thank you. Thatâs all I want to hear.â
Your throat tightened, and you bit your lip, refusing to give him what he wanted. You wouldnât play into whatever twisted game he was orchestrating.
But he sighed, the sound carrying a hint of disappointment. âStill being stubborn, huh?â he mused. âThatâs okay. I like a challenge.â
His hand moved to your chin, tilting your face slightly to the side. Though you couldnât see his expression behind the mask, you could feel his gaze burning into you, his intensity unnerving.
âYouâll come around,â he said softly, his voice dripping with certainty. âOne day, youâll see that Iâm the only one who truly cares about you.â
Before you could respond, he pulled back slightly, his grip on your wrists loosening just enough for you to jerk free. Without looking back, you bolted, your heart pounding as your feet hit the pavement.
But even as you ran, his voice echoed in your mind, smooth and haunting.
âOne day, sweetheart. Youâll thank me.â
You didnât stop running until the bright lights of the police station came into view. Your chest burned, your breath coming in ragged gasps, but the overwhelming need for safety pushed you forward. Bursting through the station doors, you stumbled inside, drawing the attention of a few officers.
âI need help!â you blurted out, your voice trembling. âThereâs been a... a murder. And I saw him. I saw the killer!â
The room went silent for a moment as the officers exchanged quick glances before one of them, a tall man with a kind but serious face, approached you.
âAlright, take a deep breath,â he said, guiding you to a chair. âLetâs get this sorted. Where did this happen?â
You described the location of the alleyway, your voice shaky as you recounted the events. The officer nodded, gesturing for another officer to dispatch units to the scene immediately. Within moments, two officers left the station, heading toward the area you described.
âOkay,â the tall officer said, sitting down across from you with a notepad. âWeâre going to need a full report from you. Start from the beginningâeverything you saw, everything you experienced.â
Your hands shook as you clasped them tightly together, trying to steady yourself. You closed your eyes for a moment, forcing yourself to recount every detail, no matter how horrifying.
You told them about walking home, the drunk man, and the sounds that had drawn you to the alley. You described the killer in as much detail as you could: the mask, the knife, the dark clothes. You hesitated when you got to the part where he cornered you, his words still ringing in your ears.
âHe... he grabbed me,â you admitted, your voice barely above a whisper. âPinned me against the wall. He said he was protecting me. That I should... thank him.â
The officerâs pen paused briefly on the notepad, his brows furrowing.
âHe said he killed the man for me,â you continued, your throat tightening as you forced the words out. âThat he was doing it because he cared about me.â
The officer leaned back slightly, his expression a mix of concern and disbelief. âDid you recognize him? Anything distinctive about his voice, his build, his mannerisms?â
You shook your head, feeling a wave of frustration and helplessness wash over you. âNo. He wore a mask, and his voice... it was muffled. But he was tall, and he moved... like he was confident. Like heâd done this before.â
The officer nodded, jotting down your words. âYou did the right thing coming here. Weâll have officers sweep the area, and weâll add this information to the ongoing investigation.â
--
You sat in the station for what felt like an eternity, the hum of conversations and ringing phones fading into the background as your nerves took over. Every second that passed felt like it stretched longer than the last, the events of the night playing on a loop in your head.
Finally, the door swung open, and a pair of officers walked in, their expressions grim. One of them leaned in to speak with the tall officer who had taken your statement. After a brief conversation, he turned back to you and gestured for you to come over.
âThey found the body,â he said quietly, his voice steady but laced with tension. âIt was hidden behind some trash cans in the alley. The killerâs gone. But thereâs something you need to see.â
Your stomach dropped, but you forced yourself to follow him to a desk where a computer screen was lit with grainy black-and-white footage.
âThis is from a nearby CCTV camera,â the officer explained, clicking to play the video.
You leaned forward, your heart pounding as the footage started. There you were, walking down the street, your bag slung over your shoulder. You saw the drunk man trailing behind you, stumbling slightly, clutching the beer bottle. Your pulse quickened as you watched yourself pause and glance back before speeding up, the man still following.
The video cut briefly to another angle. The drunk man was now heading back down the street after youâd run. Suddenly, a shadow emerged from the alleyway. A figure stepped out behind him, silent and deliberate. The killer.
You watched, frozen, as the killer grabbed the man and pulled him into the alley in one swift motion. The man barely had time to react before disappearing into the shadows.
The screen flickered and you appeared, cautiously approaching the alley and stopping as if trying to decide whether to investigate. Then, just as you remembered, you turned and began walking awayâonly to get dragged in.
The next part made your blood run cold.
The camera caught the moment the killer stepped into view, just as you ran off-screen. He stopped in the middle of the street, standing there like a statue, watching you flee. Then, slowly, his head tilted upward, and he looked directly at the camera.
Even through the grainy footage, the gleaming white mask was unmistakable.
The killer stared into the camera for a long moment, tilting his head like a predator examining prey. Then, without any sense of urgency, he turned and disappeared into the shadows.
The officer paused the video, his jaw tight as he glanced at you. âThe way he looked at the camera⊠itâs almost like he wanted us to see him.â
You couldnât speak. Your throat felt dry, and your hands were clammy as you clutched the edge of the desk. The image of the masked figure burned into your mind was now accompanied by that chilling motionâthe way heâd looked at the camera, unafraid, almost playful.
âDo you know him?â the officer asked gently, his tone careful.
You shook your head quickly, maybe a little too quickly. âNo. IâI donât know anyone whoâdâŠâ You trailed off, your voice faltering.
The officer studied you for a moment, his expression unreadable. âAlright,â he said finally. âWeâre going to keep investigating, and weâll need to keep in contact with you. If anythingâanything at allâcomes to mind, you let us know.â
You nodded, your mind still racing as the image of the killerâs mask lingered.
The officer sighed, rubbing the back of his neck. âFor now, weâll have someone escort you home. You shouldnât be out there alone.â
Home. The thought of being alone right now was terrifying, but staying here with the memory of that footage wasnât much better.
As an officer prepared to walk you out, you glanced back at the frozen frame on the screen. The mask, the tilted head, the casual way heâd turned and walked away.
He wasnât just watching.
He was toying with you.
The car ride was quiet, the hum of the engine filling the silence as you stared out the window, your mind racing with everything that had happened. The officer glanced at you occasionally, likely noticing your pale complexion and tense posture.
As you neared your neighborhood, you suddenly remembered your phone. "Wait," you blurted out, sitting up straighter. "Can we stop by my friend's place? I left my phone there earlier."
The officer hesitated but nodded. âAlright, just make it quick. Whatâs the address?â
You rattled it off, and within minutes, the car pulled up in front of Ni-kiâs building. You quickly unbuckled your seatbelt, mumbling a soft, "Iâll be right back," before stepping out and jogging up to the building. Your stomach churned with unease as you entered and climbed the stairs.
When you reached Ni-kiâs door, you paused, glancing back down the hall. It was quiet, almost too quiet. Taking a deep breath, you raised your hand and knocked.
It took a few moments, but the door finally opened.
Ni-ki stood there, his damp hair pushed back messily, droplets of water still clinging to his neck. He had clearly just stepped out of the shower, wearing a loose hoodie and sweatpants that hung lazily on his frame.
âHey,â he greeted with a soft smile, his eyes lighting up when he saw you. âI was wondering when youâd come back for this.â He held up your phone, which had been sitting on his desk.
You gave him a sheepish smile, reaching for it. âYeah, Iâm sorry. I got distracted earlier and completely forgot.â
He chuckled, leaning against the doorframe as he handed it to you. âNo problem. You okay, though? You seem⊠tense.â
âIâm fine,â you said quickly, clutching the phone to your chest. âJustâuh, long day. Thanks, Ni-ki.â
Before he could say anything else, you turned and started walking back down the hall.
âWaitââ Ni-ki called after you, his voice tinged with concern. âYou sure youâre okay? Youâre acting weird.â
You ignored him, speeding up your pace. âIâm fine! See you Monday!â
â(Y/N)ââ
You didnât stop, practically jogging back to the police car. You climbed in, shutting the door behind you and exhaling deeply as the officer glanced at you in the rearview mirror.
âGot what you needed?â she asked.
âYeah,â you muttered, not meeting her gaze.
The drive home was just as silent as before, the weight of the night pressing down on your chest. When the officer pulled up outside your apartment, she gave you a small nod. âStay inside tonight. Lock your doors. If you need anything, donât hesitate to call.â
âThank you,â you murmured, stepping out and heading to your door.
Once inside, you locked the door behind you, sliding the chain into place for extra security. You leaned against it, exhaling deeply as your heart continued to race.
You glanced at your phone, still clutched tightly in your hand, and felt a pang of guilt. Ni-ki had been nothing but kind to you, and youâd brushed him off so abruptly.
But you couldnât stop thinking about the killer, about the way heâd spoken to you, about the way heâd looked at you. It was like his presence still lingered, even now, haunting you.
With a sigh, you set your phone down and headed to your room, determined to push the events of the night out of your mind. You needed sleepâdesperately.
Your phone buzzed, pulling you from your thoughts. You glanced down, seeing a message from Ni-ki.
Ni-ki: Hey, you okay? I know you were in a rush earlier⊠If you need someone to talk to, I'm here.
A small smile tugged at the corner of your lips, but you couldn't quite shake off the tension in your chest. You quickly typed back.
You: Yeah, Iâm fine. Just⊠been a weird day, you know?
You stared at the screen for a moment before adding:
You: Would you mind calling me? I could use someone to talk toâŠ
It didnât take long for him to reply.
Ni-ki: Of course. Iâll call you now.
A few moments later, your phone rang. You swiped to answer, bringing it to your ear.
âHey,â Ni-kiâs voice came through, calm and warm, despite the underlying concern. âYou doing okay now?â
You leaned back against the wall, feeling a sense of relief just hearing his voice.
âYeah,â you replied softly. âJust⊠everything feels a little off tonight. Iâm glad you messaged.â
He was quiet for a moment, and you could almost picture him thinking.
âIâm glad you reached out,â he said finally. âYou donât have to go through stuff like this alone. I know it might seem like everythingâs chaotic, but youâve got me. You can always talk to me.â
His words had an unexpected comfort to them, and you felt some of the weight lift off your shoulders.
âThanks,â you said quietly. âI really appreciate it, Ni-ki.â
âI mean it,â he replied with a soft chuckle. âAnytime, seriously. If you need a distraction or just someone to listen, Iâve got you.â
You smiled to yourself, grateful for his kindness.
âMaybe we can talk more tomorrow, huh? Iâll make sure to check in on you again. Donât want you feeling like this all night.â
You felt a slight pang of guilt but quickly pushed it away.
âIâll be okay. And⊠thanks again. Iâm just gonna try to get some sleep.â
âSounds good. Get some rest, and if anything comes up, just text me, alright?â
âI will. Goodnight, Ni-ki.â
âGoodnight,â he said, the sincerity in his voice making you feel a little lighter.
As you ended the call, you leaned back into your pillow, feeling a bit more at ease.
--
The doorbell rang again the next morning, pulling you from your thoughts. You blinked, confused, before walking over to the door and pulling it open. To your surprise, there stood Ni-ki, looking as effortlessly stylish as ever, wearing a relaxed smile.
âIâm taking you to the mall,â he said, as if it were the most natural thing in the world.
You stared at him for a moment, your eyes widening. âWait, what? Youâre... what?â
Ni-ki chuckled, clearly amused by your reaction. âI figured you could use a little break. Youâve been cooped up here long enough.â
You glanced at the clock. It was a bit earlier than you expected. âBut Iââ
Before you could protest any further, you heard the sound of your own feet hitting the floor as you dashed towards your bedroom. âGive me a second! I need to get dressed!â
Ni-ki didnât seem to mind. He just chuckled again, stepping inside and closing the door behind him. âTake your time. Iâll be here.â
You quickly pulled your clothes out of your closet, racing against the clock to change, but as you did, you could hear the soft sound of Ni-ki sitting on the couch, the hum of his phone as he likely scrolled through something. Even as you hurried to change, you couldnât help but feel a little nervousâhe was waiting for you.
After awhile, you stepped out, having finally gotten dressed in something comfortable but still cute enough for a day out. You were still adjusting your jacket when you caught sight of Ni-ki, his attention fixed on his phone.
âYou ready?â he asked, glancing up from his phone when he noticed you stepping into the living room.
You nodded, feeling a little bashful but excited at the same time. âYeah, letâs go.â
Ni-ki grinned and stood up, tossing his phone onto the couch. âI knew youâd be ready in no time.â
Ni-ki led the way out of the apartment, holding the door open for you. The cool air greeted you as you stepped outside, and for the first time in a while, you felt a sense of calm settle over you
As you both walked to the car, Ni-ki kept his usual easygoing demeanor, flashing you an occasional grin, but his eyes held a warmth that made you feel at ease.
Once you got to the car, Ni-ki opened the door for you with a dramatic bow. âAfter you, milady,â he teased, his smile playful.
You laughed, stepping into the car. âYouâre a dork,â you said, shaking your head.
He slid into the driverâs seat and started the engine, the car pulling out of the parking lot as he hummed along to the song on the radio. The drive was smooth, with Ni-ki chatting casually, asking about how youâd been feeling lately, if you were still swamped with schoolwork, and if you had any specific things you wanted to do at the mall.
âIâm just along for the ride, really,â you said, feeling a little more relaxed with each passing moment. âIâm happy to just hang out.â
Ni-ki glanced at you, his lips curving upward. âGood, âcause I was planning on getting us some snacks, trying on some clothes, and maybe finding something ridiculous to make you laugh.â
You couldnât help but chuckle at that. âIâm down for that,â you agreed.
The ride went by quickly, with the two of you talking and joking about random things, from bad fashion choices to the latest crime drama episode you both had watched recently. When the mall came into view, Ni-ki parked the car, giving you a quick glance. âReady to have some fun?â
You nodded, your smile wide. âAbsolutely.â
You and Ni-ki wandered through the mall, hopping from store to store, trying on ridiculous hats and laughing at each otherâs choices. He picked out a bright pink beanie with oversized ears, putting it on your head and grinning mischievously. "You should totally rock this look," he teased, his eyes sparkling with amusement.
You rolled your eyes but played along, giving a dramatic twirl. "Do you think it brings out my eyes?" you joked, striking a pose.
Ni-kiâs smile widened, and he leaned in slightly, as if seriously considering the question. "Honestly? It definitely makes your eyes pop. Maybe not in the way you think, though."
You burst into laughter, nudging him playfully in the side. "Youâre ridiculous," you said between giggles. But you didnât mindâit felt good to laugh, to feel normal for once.
After some time, you both left the store, each with a few new items in hand, and wandered into the food court. Ni-ki, ever the expert in decision-making, immediately made a beeline for the bubble tea stand. âYou want your usual?â he asked, already pulling out his wallet.
âOf course,â you said with a grin. âYou know me too well.â
As you waited for your drinks, Ni-ki leaned against the counter casually, his expression relaxed. âThis was fun, right? Iâm glad you decided to come out with me today.â His tone was light, but there was something behind itâan undercurrent of sincerity that made you pause.
You smiled back at him, grateful for the day. âYeah. I needed this... more than I thought.â
The bubble tea arrived, and the two of you walked over to a nearby table, settling in with your drinks. Ni-ki took a sip of his, then glanced over at you, his brow furrowing just slightly. "So, how have you been holding up? I know everythingâs been... a little crazy lately."
You hesitated for a moment, not wanting to drag the mood down, but knowing Ni-ki would probably notice if you didnât say something. You took a deep breath, sipping your tea as you tried to find the right words.
"Iâve been okay," you said, after a beat. "Some days are better than others, but... itâs easier when Iâm with people I trust. Like you."
Ni-ki gave you a soft smile, his eyes crinkling at the corners. âGood. Iâm glad Iâm one of those people,â he said, his voice gentle.
You both fell into a comfortable silence, sipping your drinks and occasionally exchanging a few words.
Afterwards you were strolling through the aisles of the store, enjoying the soft hum of the background music and the peaceful atmosphere, when something caught your eyeâa shelf full of adorable plushies. You couldnât resist, and you found yourself picking up a cute little bear, smiling at how soft it was. But in that moment of distraction, you didnât realize that Ni-ki had wandered off somewhere else in the store.
A few moments later, you heard the voices.
At first, they were distant, but slowly they grew louder, the tone dripping with mockery. You turned to see a group of familiar faces from schoolâsome guys and girls who were known for their snide remarks.
âWow, look at this,â one of the guys sneered. âAll grown up, and still playing with toys?â
You felt your stomach tighten, but you didnât let it show. You had heard this all before. Still, the words felt heavier today.
âYou know, you should really grow up,â another girl added, laughing with the rest of them. âItâs kind of embarrassing, donât you think?â
Normally, youâd brush it off with a sarcastic remark or a clever comeback, but today was different. You just couldnât summon the energy to fight back. Instead, you gave a quiet, âItâs just a plushie,â and shrugged, turning to walk away.
But that didnât stop them.
âReally, youâre such a child. Itâs honestly pathetic,â the girl said, her voice mocking.
You stopped in your tracks, taking a deep breath. You were about to walk away again when she added something that made your blood run cold.
âYouâre just as pathetic as Ni-ki. He probably doesnât even care about you?â
The words were like a slap to the face. Without thinking, your eyes snapped toward her, your glare icy.
âYou donât know anything about us,â you hissed, your voice low and sharp. âMaybe you should focus on your own life instead of judging others.â
The girlâs expression faltered, but she wasnât done. With a malicious grin, she raised her hand, ready to slap you across the face.
But before she could, a strong hand shot out, gripping her wrist firmly.
âDonât even think about it,â came a low, dangerous voice.
You looked up in surprise to see Ni-ki, towering over the group. His usual relaxed posture was gone, replaced by a stance of quiet fury. The others fell silent, their eyes wide.
Ni-kiâs grip on the girlâs wrist tightened, and she yelped, trying to pull away. But Ni-ki didnât budge.
âThey can make fun of me all they want,â he said, his voice cold and low, each word laced with intensity. âBut if you ever, ever make fun of her again, Iâll make sure you regret it.â
The girl blinked up at him, looking stunned, but Ni-ki didnât release his hold. He was a completely different person now, standing tall that made it clear he wasnât going to let anyone make fun of youânot now, not ever.
The group shifted uncomfortably, clearly not used to seeing him like this. Ni-kiâs gaze never wavered from the girl, who was still trying to wriggle out of his grip. He spoke again, his words cutting through the tension like a knife.
âIf I hear you even think about messing with her again, Iâll make sure itâs the last time. Got it?â
The girlâs face went pale, and after a moment, she finally pulled her wrist from his grasp. She didnât say anything elseâshe didnât have to. Ni-ki had made his point clear.
As the group scattered, you stood there in shock, your heart pounding in your chest. You werenât sure whether to feel relieved or overwhelmed by the intensity of it all.
Ni-ki turned to you, his expression softening slightly, though there was still a hint of that protective edge. âAre you okay?â he asked, his voice gentler now.
You nodded, still processing everything. âYeah⊠Thanks. I guess I owe you one,â you said.
âDonât worry about it,â he said with a shrug, his usual smile returning. âIâd do it again in a heartbeat.â
With that, the two of you continued your walk through the store.
--
The rain poured down heavily, a soft, constant drumming against the window as you sat at your kitchen table. You were absentmindedly eating your cereal when the sound of the TV caught your attention. The news anchorâs voice was steady but the words were jarring.
âA group of teens, including some local college students, have been reported missing. Authorities are investigating their whereabouts, but no leads have been found as of now.â
You froze, the spoon in your hand slipping from your grip and clattering to the floor. The world around you seemed to freeze for a moment, your heart skipping a beat. It took a few seconds for the words to registerâteens, a group, missing.
You couldnât help but feel the creeping dread settle in your chest. You quickly stood up, your movements rushed and frantic.
You put your bowl down with shaking hands, grabbed your phone, keys, and bag, not even bothering to grab a proper breakfast. You yanked on your jacket, grabbed your umbrella, and rushed out the door, the sound of the rain growing louder as you fought against the storm.
When you finally reached the school grounds, the rain hadnât let up. You were drenched, but it didnât matter. You immediately zeroed in on Ni-kiâs tall frame, his head down as he rifled through his bag, clearly looking for something.
You took a deep breath and made your way toward him, feeling the weight of the situation pressing down on you.
"Ni-ki!" you called out, stepping forward.
He jumped in surprise, his body stiffening as he spun around to look at you. His wide eyes softened when he saw you, though there was an edge of confusion in his expression.
âHey,â he said, his voice still heavy with sleep, probably because it was so early. "You okay? Youâre all wet.â
You nodded quickly, shaking your umbrella as you stood in front of him. "Yeah, Iâm fine. I justâ" You paused, your heart hammering in your chest. "Did you hear about the missing teens?"
Ni-kiâs face went still for a moment, his eyes narrowing. Then he sighed and ran a hand through his damp hair, as if processing everything in his head. âYeah. I heard. I donât know⊠itâs weird, right? Some of them were people from school.â
You nodded, feeling a pit grow in your stomach. âYeah. Itâs just⊠strange, with everything thatâs been happening lately.â You bit your lip, trying to read his face. He wasnât showing any obvious signs of worry, but then again, Ni-ki had always been good at hiding his emotions when it suited him.
Ni-ki paused, his expression hardening for a moment. âI know. But we donât know anything for sure yet. Iâm sure the police will figure it out.â
You studied him for a moment, watching how composed he was despite the situation. He was always so calm, but today it was different. You noticed how his shoulders were just a little stiffer than usual, his gaze just a little more distant, though he quickly returned his focus to you.
âCome on,â he said after a moment, his smile returning, though it didnât quite reach his eyes. âLetâs get to class.â
You nodded, following him, but the unease that had settled in your chest refused to leave. Something felt off.
The entire day felt off, like there was an invisible weight pressing on you, pulling your attention in a thousand directions. As you sat in class, your fingers kept scrolling through your phone, searching for any new information about the missing students. Every news site you checked had the same vague updates, all of them repeating the same informationâthe authorities were still investigating, but there were no leads. The unease grew heavier in your chest with each passing minute.
You didnât even realize you werenât paying attention to the lesson until the teacher called on you, pulling you back to reality with a jolt. You hastily tried to catch up, your mind racing with thoughts about what might be happening. The missing students. The weird, unsettling feeling that something was wrong.
As the bell rang for the next class, you absentmindedly packed up your things, your mind still elsewhere. You were so lost in your thoughts that you didnât notice Ni-ki sitting next to you, watching you with a careful, intense gaze.
It wasnât until he spoke that you realized heâd been looking at you for a while. His voice was low, almost dangerous in its calmness.
âYou havenât been paying attention all day,â he said, his tone not accusatory but focused, like he was analyzing every little thing. âWhatâs going on?â
You looked up, surprised by the directness in his tone. Ni-kiâs eyes werenât his usual playful, teasing selfâthey were sharp, focused, and a little darker than usual. There was something in them that made your heart race, something you couldnât quite place.
You hesitated for a moment, unsure whether to tell him what you were feeling, or if it was just your imagination running wild. The tension in the air seemed to thicken as he waited for you to respond, and despite everything, you felt the need to be honest with him.
âI donât knowâŠâ you trailed off, feeling the weight of the situation pressing down on you. âItâs just⊠something feels wrong, Ni-ki. Thereâs this whole thing with the missing students, and it doesnât feel like itâs over. I keep thinking about all of it. I canât stop.â
Ni-kiâs gaze never left you as you spoke, and he gave a slight nod, as if he understood. The tension in his eyes didnât fade, thoughâif anything, it seemed to grow.
âYouâre not the only one who feels it,â he said quietly. âBut youâve got to be careful. People donât always show their true faces. And sometimes, the things that feel wrong are just the beginning.â
You swallowed hard, the weight of his words sinking into you. There was something about the way he said itâlike he knew more than he was letting on. You wanted to ask him more, to press him for details, but the way he looked at you made you think better of it.
Instead, you gave a small, uneasy nod. âIâll keep that in mind,â you replied, though you couldnât shake the feeling that you were already caught up in something much bigger than you realized.
Ni-ki turned his gaze away after a moment, but not before his eyes flickered down to your hand, which you had been fidgeting with absentmindedly. He seemed to think about something for a second, and then, without warning, he reached out and gently brushed his fingers over yours. The simple touch was enough to send a jolt through your body, but when he met your eyes again, his expression had softened, almost reassuring.
âDonât let it consume you,â he said, his voice more tender now, as if trying to comfort you in his own way. âWeâll figure it out, together.â
You nodded, though you werenât sure what he meant by together.
After school, you had made up your mind not to stay out too late. You just wanted to get home, rest, and focus on the things you needed to catch up on. The bus ride was uneventful, and you felt a small sense of relief as you stepped off and made your way home. The familiar walk up to your building gave you a little comfort, and you entered quickly, glad to be out of the rain.
Once inside, you kicked off your shoes, tossed your bag onto the couch, and went straight for the bathroom to wash away the stress of the day. The hot water from the shower was soothing, and you stood there for a while, letting it run over your shoulders as you closed your eyes, lost in the sensation of warmth and calm.
When you finally stepped out, wrapped in a towel, you dried off and got dressed in something comfortable, and started studying, but a few hours later your stomach growled loudly, a reminder that it had been far too long since youâd eaten.
You sighed, glancing at the clock. It was already late, and you had hardly eaten all day. You stood up from your desk, stretched, and made your way to the kitchen to see what you could scrounge up. As you opened the fridge, you found a few thingsâa block of cheese, some leftover rice, some random vegetablesâbut not nearly enough to make a decent meal. Your eyes landed on the empty shelf where you normally kept the essentials like eggs, bread, and a few other things.
You cursed under your breath.
You hadnât gone grocery shopping in a while, and it was becoming apparent just how low on supplies you were. Youâd been putting it off for days, but now you were paying the price. You pulled out your phone to make a quick list of the things you needed to pick up: eggs, bread, some fresh produce, and whatever else would make an easy dinner. You threw on a jacket, grabbed your phone and keys, and headed back out the door.
The chill of the evening air hit you as soon as you stepped outside. You pulled your jacket tighter around yourself, the rain still lightly falling from the sky. The store wasnât too far, but youâd be walking through puddles, and you could already feel the dampness creeping into your shoes. Still, you needed the food, so you picked up your pace and headed in the direction of the local grocery store.
By the time you reached the entrance, you had that familiar grocery store smellâthe faint scent of freshly baked bread mixed with the cool air of refrigerationâand you pushed open the door, ready to get what you needed and get back home.
You grabbed your essentialsâsome vegetables, some rice, and a few other ingredients to make the dinner you had planned.
You walked out of the store, the cold evening air hitting your face as you carefully balanced your bag of groceries. Your phone buzzed in your pocket, and you pulled it out, glancing at it absentmindedly as you began to make your way back to your apartment. You swiped through a few messages and notifications, barely paying attention to the route you were taking.
But when you finally looked up, you froze.
The street around you didnât look familiar at all. You glanced back, realizing you must have taken a wrong turn somewhere. Your surroundings had shifted from the usual city bustle to an unfamiliar area with dilapidated houses lining the street. The buildings looked old, their windows boarded up, and the paint on the walls was chipped, peeling away from years of neglect. The street was quiet, almost eerily so, and the air felt still in a way that made your skin prickle.
You checked your phone to see your location, but it didn't help much. You could have sworn youâd taken the right path.
You stood for a moment, considering whether to retrace your steps or try to find another route back home. Thatâs when the sound reached your earsâa sharp, blood-curdling scream. Your heart skipped a beat. It echoed through the quiet, a cry filled with terror and desperation.
Your mind screamed at you to turn around, to keep walking and get back to the familiar streets. But something inside you stirredâa compulsion you couldnât shake. Another scream, followed by a cry for help, rang out, louder this time. The desperation in the voice pulled at you like an invisible thread.
Without fully realizing it, you started moving toward the sound. You glanced around nervously, double-checking that you werenât being followed, but all you could see were the looming, abandoned houses. The streetlights flickered sporadically, casting long, haunting shadows over the cracked pavement. The atmosphere felt heavy, suffocating.
You set your groceries down carefully on the ground, the sound of the bag crinkling in the quiet making you pause for a moment. You slowly made your way toward the large house where the screams had come from. It stood at the end of the street, a large, imposing structure with peeling paint and broken windows. It looked almost like a mansion at one point, but now it was barely standing, with decay eating away at its foundation.
You hesitated, but that instinct in you, the one telling you to keep moving, pushed you forward. You approached the front door, cautiously reaching out to try the handle. To your surprise, it turned easily, creaking as the door slowly opened with little resistance.
The inside was just as unsettling as the outside. It was dark, the only light coming from the weak glow of the streetlights outside, filtering through the broken windows. Dust clung to every surface, and the air smelled stale, like it hadnât been disturbed in years. You hesitated for a moment, then pulled out your phone and turned on the flashlight. The small beam of light illuminated the eerie interior, casting long shadows along the walls.
You walked quietly, each step careful, your heart hammering in your chest. There was an unsettling silence now, the kind that makes every creak of the floorboard seem like an alarm ringing.
As you moved through the rooms, you found only remnants of the houseâs former lifeâold furniture covered in dust, paintings half-faded with age, and broken mirrors hanging crookedly on the walls. It didnât feel right, like the house itself was hiding something.
You continued forward, your pulse racing, until you saw the stairs. The narrow staircase creaked under your feet as you started to climb, the air thick with tension. You took each step slowly, trying to make as little noise as possible. The further you climbed, the more oppressive the silence became, making you feel like you were intruding on something dangerous.
At the top you found another hallway, dark and seemingly endless. The hair on the back of your neck stood up as you slowly moved forward, the sound of your breath heavy in your ears. You didnât know what you were expecting to find, but with each step you took, the feeling of dread only deepened.
You were too far in now. Something had drawn you here, and no matter how much you wanted to turn back, you couldnât.
You continued down the dark hallway at the top of the stairs, your flashlight flicking over the faded wallpaper and old doors that creaked slightly with the movement of the house. The air was thick with dust, and the floorboards groaned beneath your steps as you moved forward, every creak seeming louder in the stillness.
But despite the eerie surroundings, there was nothingâno signs of anyone being here, no more sounds of distress. The rooms you peeked into were abandoned, just like the rest of the house. Some were empty, their floors covered in broken glass or debris; others held old furniture, now falling apart with age.
You moved cautiously, stepping lightly to avoid making noise, but your mind was beginning to feel like it was playing tricks on you. The urgency that had pushed you to come this far was fading, replaced by a strange, unsettling feeling.
Your flashlight beam swept over more roomsâempty, forgotten, silent. You checked the windows of each room, but they were all boarded up or shattered, the light outside barely filtering through the gaps. Nothing moved, nothing stirred. The only sound was the slow rhythm of your own breath and the occasional rustle of your shoes against the old carpet.
The stairs seemed endless, but you couldnât stop now. Something was pulling you forward, urging you to climb higher, even though you knew deep down it might be a mistake.
You reached the next floor, your heart racing with each step. This floor, just like the others, was coated in layers of dust and neglect. You didnât dare touch anything; you just scanned each room quickly, hoping for a clue or something to justify your presence. But still, there was nothing.
You stood in the center of the hallway, a small sense of dread growing in your chest. There was no sign of anyone, no one to help. The house was as empty and cold as ever.
You sighed in frustration, about to turn and leave, when you noticed something different. A door at the end of the hallâa door that looked⊠newer, as though it hadnât suffered the same wear as the rest of the house. Something about it caught your attention. It wasnât the same peeling wood or faded paint. It was almost as if the door had been replaced, but not the rest of the house.
You slowly moved toward it, your hand hesitating on the doorknob.
You turned the knob, and the door creaked open.
On the other side was a small, dimly lit room. It was sparsely furnishedâjust a single chair in the center, facing a tall mirror that seemed too clean, too pristine in this neglected space. The rest of the room was dark, the corners shrouded in shadows.
But in the reflection of the mirror, you saw something that made your blood run cold.
A figure standing behind you.
You spun around, your breath catching in your throat, but the room was empty.
You turned back to the mirror, only to see your own wide-eyed expression, the flashlight still trembling in your hand.
Was it a trick of the light?
You couldnât tell, but the sense of dread intensified, and every instinct you had screamed at you to leave.
Your heart raced in your chest as you hesitated in the hallway, the silence around you thick with dread, you stood frozen, unsure whether to retreat or continue forward. But the distant cries for help, desperate and pleading, pushed you onward.
You slowly climbed the last set of stairs, careful with every step, your breath shallow as you tried not to make a sound. The air seemed heavier here, colder, as if the building itself was alive with something sinister. Each creak of the floorboards under your feet was unnervingly loud in the silence, but you forced yourself to keep moving.
At the top of the stairs, the floor seemed differentânewer, almost cleaner than the rest of the house. You could hear faint whimpers, like someone in pain. Your stomach churned, a wave of nausea washing over you, but you ignored it. You needed to know what was happening, needed to help whoever it was.
You crept down the hall, pausing only when you reached the door at the end. It was barely ajar, just enough to allow a glimpse of what lay beyond. Hesitantly, you peered through the crack, your heart nearly stopping when the scene before you registered.
It was a girlâsomeone you knew well from school. The same one from the mall, the one who had tried to hit you just days ago. But now, she was in a different state entirely. Bound to a chair, her body covered in blood, her eyes glazed with pain and fear. Her hair matted with sweat, her clothes torn and stained. It was a sight so revolting it made your stomach turn.
You gasped softly, the breath catching in your throat. The scene felt surreal, as if you were watching some horrible nightmare. The blood, both dried and fresh, had stained the chair she was tied to, the dark red splotches contrasting against the pale, almost sickly white of her skin. It was a haunting sight.
A few moments of stunned silence passed as your mind struggled to comprehend what you were seeing. Then, something inside you clickedâinstinct, maybe, or the sheer desperation to do something. You couldnât just leave her like this. Not after everything you had already witnessed.
You quickly opened the door just enough to squeeze through, the sharp creak of the hinges making your heart race even faster. As you stepped inside, your feet almost felt like they were dragging on their own. You moved toward her cautiously, afraid of alerting anyone who might be nearby.
Her breathing was shallow, but she was still alive. She winced, a painful sound escaping her as you approached, her eyes struggling to stay open. You couldnât help but feel a surge of sympathy for herâno matter the past between you two, no one deserved to be in this state.
With trembling hands, you carefully assessed her wounds. The blood was coming from several places, mostly on her legs and arms, but there were deeper gashes across her torso. It was hard to tell how deep they were, but they were certainly serious.
You quickly pressed against the worst of her wounds. She let out a pained groan, weakly trying to shift her body, but she couldnât move much. The bindings kept her in place, and all you could do was try to stem the flow of blood.
Her body tensed at the pressure, and she let out a strangled cry. You couldnât bear to think of how long she had been like this, how much time had passed since sheâd been brought here.
As you worked, a noise caught your attentionâa soft mumbling, almost unintelligible. Your blood ran cold as you turned your head toward the sound, your eyes locking on a partially open door to another room, connected to where you were. The figure of someone moved within, their back to you.
You didnât need to see their face to know who it was.
The hair on the back of your neck stood on end as panic surged through you, but you forced yourself to remain calm. You looked back at the girl, who was still breathing heavily but seemed barely conscious.
You couldnât leave her. You couldnât.
But you also knew that the moment the killer came back in, youâd both be in even more danger. You had to act fast.
Carefully, you stood and slowly, almost silently, backed away from the girl, your heart pounding in your ears. You closed the door behind you as quietly as possible, the faintest creak echoing in the silence of the house. You took a breath, holding it as you peered through the crack in the door.
Just as you thought you were safe, you saw the killer reappear in the room, the door creaking open. His cold gaze flicked to the girl, who was still bound to the chair. Without even glancing around, he stepped forward, his hands moving to adjust the knife in his grip.
You sucked in a breath, watching in silence as he leaned down, brushing his fingers over her bloodied face.
The knife glinted under the dim light as he loomed over her, speaking in a low, almost amused tone.
And then, your body tensedâyour instincts screamed at you to leave, to run before he noticed you.
The moment you stepped back, the sharp crunch of broken glass beneath your foot was like a thunderclap in the otherwise silent house. Your heart froze in your chest, you lifted your foot, eyes immediately widening.
Your breath caught in your throat as you heard a slow, deliberate creak from behind the door. The hairs on the back of your neck prickled. Without even thinking, your gaze snapped toward the crack between the door and the frame. And there he was.
The killer. His white mask was the only thing visible, but it was enough. You could feel the weight of his gaze through the small sliver, cold, calculating. The mask seemed almost too calm, too collected. He hadn't even flinched at the noise. No, he was waiting. He was waiting for you to realize the mistake you'd just made.
The cruel, teasing voice that followed was enough to freeze you in place.
"Well, well," he purred from behind the door, his tone dripping with amusement. "Looks like we've got a curious little mouse here, don't we?"
Your stomach dropped as the fear, the raw terror, finally gripped you. You felt your pulse thunder in your ears as he slowly, almost deliberately, tilted his head, eyes still hidden behind that mask.
Before you could even think, before your body could process anything else, you screamed. The sound was torn from your throat, pure panic flooding every fiber of your being. You scrambled backward, your feet slipping slightly on the old wooden floor as you scrambled toward the staircase, your heartbeat pounding so loud in your chest that you could hardly hear anything else.
Your mind screamed at you to move faster, but your legs felt like they were made of lead. Every step you took seemed to echo in the vast, empty space, and you could already hear his footsteps behind youâcloser, too close.
You shot a desperate glance over your shoulder as you reached the stairs. The killer was still there, stepping into the hallway, his slow, deliberate pace making your heart race even faster. His mask was almost inhuman in its stillness, but there was a look in his postureâpredatory, like he was enjoying the chase.
You stumble down the creaking, narrow staircase, your breath coming in ragged gasps as panic claws at your chest. Tears blur your vision, streaking your face as the blood on your trembling hands smears across the banister. You donât dare look back. You canât.
Above you, his voice echoes through the decaying walls, low and mocking, sending chills down your spine.
âRun all you want,â he calls, his tone light, almost playful. âYou know Iâll catch you.â
Your foot catches on a loose board, nearly sending you sprawling, but you grip the railing and push yourself forward. His words follow you, slithering into your ears like poison.
âYou canât hide from me. You know that, donât you? Iâll always find you. Always.â
The air is heavy with the smell of dust and mildew, but it does nothing to muffle his voice.
âYou and that little curiosity of yours,â he sneers, his footsteps steady and unhurried. âThatâs what got you into this mess. You wanted to see what was behind the curtain, didnât you?â
Your heart pounds in your chest, your legs screaming in protest as you take the steps two at a time.
âNo one else deserves you,â he continues, his voice dipping into something darker, more possessive. âOnly me. And if I canât have youâŠâ
You swallow back a sob as his words twist, their meaning sharp as a blade.
ââŠthen no one can.â
Your foot hits the landing, and you dart into the next corridor, the peeling wallpaper and flickering lights a blur around you. Still, his voice lingers, wrapping around you like a noose.
âYouâll be mine in the end. You know it. Why keep running, darling? Why deny the inevitable?â
You bite down on your lip to stifle the cry threatening to escape. The hallway stretches endlessly before you, and the sound of his stepsâslow, deliberateâechoes closer, as if heâs right behind you.
Your chest burns as you push forward, forcing your legs to move despite the overwhelming ache. The hallway feels endless, the dim, flickering lights above casting warped shadows that seem to close in on you. Each creak of the floorboards behind you makes your heart skip a beat, his taunting voice dripping into your ears like acid.
âYou canât run forever,â he hums, his tone like a lullaby meant to unsettle. âEvery step you take just brings you closer to me. Donât you see? This is fate. You were made for me.â
A sob escapes you before you can stifle it, your body betraying the terror that threatens to consume you whole. You glance frantically over your shoulder, but the staircase behind you is empty. He isnât there, and yet his voice sounds as if itâs just over your shoulder, like heâs breathing down your neck.
You shove open a door at the end of the hall, the old wood groaning on its hinges as you stumble into what looks like a storage room. Rusted tools hang on the walls, their edges sharp and unforgiving, glinting faintly in the pale light from a single bare bulb swaying overhead. Your breath catches as you scan the room, desperately searching for a way out.
âThere you go,â he purrs, his voice impossibly close now, like heâs whispering directly into your ear. âHide, if it makes you feel safer. I like when you play hard to get. It makes it so much sweeter when I finally catch you.â
You slam the door shut and lock it, your shaking hands fumbling with the rusted bolt. The sound of his footsteps grows louder, heavier now, deliberate in their approach. You back away from the door, your eyes darting around the room. The windows are boarded up, thick planks of wood nailed across the frames, no hope of escape.
Your breathing is shallow, uneven. Your hands curl into fists, fingernails biting into your palms as you try to will yourself to think. Focus. Focus.
Then, silence.
The footsteps stop. His voice is gone.
Your heart pounds in the stillness, the quiet almost worse than his taunts. You strain your ears, listening for anythingâany sign of movement, any sound that could tell you where he is. But thereâs nothing.
A soft knock on the door shatters the quiet, making you jump back with a gasp.
âAre you scared?â he asks, his voice calm now, almost tender. âYou donât need to be. Iâll take care of you. Iâll make this quick.â
The doorknob jiggles. Once. Twice. Then, a violent bang as he slams against the door, rattling the frame.
You scramble backward, your hands blindly reaching for anything, and they land on something cold and solidâa wrench, heavy and covered in dust.
Another bang. The bolt starts to bend under the pressure.
âIâm coming in, sweetheart,â he murmurs, his voice filled with a sickening glee. âLetâs end this little game, shall we?â
The door bursts open, and there he is, silhouetted against the dim light of the hallway, his figure towering, his shadow stretching across the floor like itâs ready to swallow you whole.
But youâre ready this time. Your grip tightens on the wrench, and as he steps into the room, you swing.
Part 2 here
âââââââčâ±âŒâœâ°âčââââââ
Taglist: @totallynotj3zz @starfallia @jiryunn @yangjungwonnie
@miainthestarsss @caithefly @hhyvsstuff @kkamismom12
@ilyunjina @xiaoquanquans @heeseungspookie @flwwon
#enhypen x reader#niki x reader#enhypen niki#ni ki#ni ki enhypen#enhypen#enhypen imagines#enhypen fic#niki enhypen#niki imagines#niki fluff#niki nishimura#riki nishimura x reader#nishimura riki#nishimura niki#enhypen riki#riki imagines#riki x reader#enhypen drabbles#niki drabbles#killer au#kpop fanfic
586 notes
·
View notes
Note
could you maybe please write something about mark fingering shy virgin reader and sheâs nervous and flustered but mark keeps complimenting and praising her the whole time :(((
Stress Relief (M)
Warnings: sexual content, fingering, shy/virgin reader, kinda proof read
Word count: 2,6k
A/N: jumped for joy when I got this req I need this man so bad
Mark tried, he really did. He tried to suppress those thoughts about you, wanting to touch you, feel you in ways you hadnât before. He knows youâre inexperienced and currently uncomfortable with the idea of sex, but youâre so perfect to him.
Pretty lips, pretty eyes, perfect body, perfect voice. Heâs obsessed with you, but even though youâre his girlfriend, youâre still oblivious to things you do to him. You donât know that when you sit on his lap, it makes his mind stir, whining his name drives him insane, even playing with his fingers does it for him. Itâs not like heâs never tried to slip sex into a conversation, you always shut it down.
But this time, he needs it. He canât wait.
You run to your door, Markâs signature knock making you shoot from your couch. Swinging the door open, you see him. Oversized T-shirt, basketball shorts, and his slides, your favorite outfit on him. His long hair was beginning to cover his eyes a bit, glasses almost completely covered.
âI missed you,â you said, shyly taking his hand pulling him inside.
Mark didnât say anything, just giving you that smug smile he always does when he hears something he likes. âKiss me.â
You smiled, his directness making your heart flutter. You pulled him closer to you, pressing a light kiss on his lips, your hand resting lightly on his forearm. Mark could practically feel the blood flowing to his dick, even your small touches making him delusional. âHow are you babe?â
You shrugged, a small pout appearing on your lips. âbetween work and school, Iâm so tired. I need to release some stress.â
Mark clenched his jaw, eyes scanning your body slowly.
âRelease some stress.â You make it too hard to resist you. Youâve been pushing his buttons for so long he's going to burst at any second.
âThat sucks. I wish I could help you.â His voice was low, softer than usual. Markâs gaze made you feel like prey, like he wanted to eat you but you secretly loved it.
âThat's why I told you to come over. I wanted you to help me.â
Mark licks his lips, pulling you into a deep kiss softly. You were taken back by his actions, so flustered you gripped his bicep tight while he pressed his body against yours. Your chest presses against his tight, a small whine leaving your lips. Mark places his hands on your waist, letting them trail down to your ass, squeezing the flesh in his hands.
âMark that hurts,â you whine, slapping his arm softly.
âLet me release some stress,â he says, eyes flickering from your lips to your cleavage.
His predatory gaze doesnât go unnoticed, the grip he has on your body making your heart race. Your body is hot, stomach beginning to tingle when he bites his lip.
âI wanna make you feel good,â he said almost in a whisper.
âhow?â
âWant me to show you?â
Mark could cry when you nodded, your shy gaze averting to your feet after he spoke. He takes your hand, leading you to your bedroom. He canât see you, but he knows youâre looking at him, eyes wide and brows scrunched in worry. Your hands are sweating, the thought of losing your virginity finally setting in as you take your first step into your room. Mark sits on your bed, a tiny smile on his lips as he watches you stand in front of him awkwardly.
âWhy are you so far,â he laughs softly. You move up, standing between his spread legs. Mark looks up at you, his big brown eyes even bigger because of his frames. The man grabs the back of your thighs, rubbing and squeezing your legs. His fingers brushed dangerously close to your aching pussy making your breath hitch.
âhow are you gonna help me,â you ask, hands resting on his shoulders. Mark loves speaking with actions more than with his words, so when he pulled your shirt up, kissing your stomach slowly. His lips were soft on your skin, his lip balm leaving residue but you didnât mind. With every kiss, his tongue touched your stomach, the feeling of the hot muscle making you want him more and more.
âI know youâre nervous,â he says, planting more kisses. âWe can take it slow okay?â
You nod, making him smile.
âsit next to me okay?â you sit, barely having a second to get comfortable when Mark grabs you by your waist kissing you roughly. His hands gripped the skin of your sides, unable to stop them from letting them fall further down your body between your legs.
Unconsciously, your legs part, wanting him to continue touching you. You feel his fingers ghost over your clit, the very soft, faint touch of his fingertips through the fabric making you jump, gasping softly.
Mark takes notice, continuing to run that spot slowly, your gasp tiring into shaky breathing. He parted from your lips resting his forehead on yours as he watched your brows furrow. You rested your body against his, allowing him to hold up.
âDoes that feel good hm?â Mark kisses your jaw, his hand squeezing your waist softly while his other hand plays with the waistband of your pants. He smirked, biting his lip when you nodded. âWould you let me finger you?â
Your eyes shot open, he stopped rubbing you through the thin fabric staring at you for an answer. âI-I thought we were taking it slow.â
âThat is a slow baby.â
You gulped, your nervous facial expression tugging at his heart. You were too cute, it made him want you even more. âO-okay. What do you need me to do?â
He chuckled, kissing you softly before answering. âWell first,â he says, pulling away from you, âthese need to come off.â
You could feel his eyes burning into your body the moment you stood up. Your fingers lingered at your waist band, playing with it to try and subside how nervous you were but nothing was going to calm you down. âBefore we do this can I just be honest,â you say, looking down at him.Â
âgo ahead.â
âI'm sorry if I do something or say something wrong,â you start. âIâve never done anything like this before so Iâm trying to stay calm but you know how I get when Iâm nervous. I can stop rambling and talking and-â
Mark chuckled, looking up at you with adoration. âIt's okay baby. Itâs just me.âÂ
âI know itâs just you. You have all this experience and I have none.â You pout, expecting to be shown pity but he does nothing but smile. Mark doesnât let you regain your sanity, dipping his fingers into your pants, pulling them down. Your eyes were so wide they almost popped out of your head. âMark!âÂ
âsit right here,â he said, patting between his legs. His entire energy shifted. He was sweet and understanding before, but now itâs like a whole new story. Slowly, you sit down, putting both your feet on the mattress. your legs are closed tight together, head down in complete embarrassment. Mark sat behind you, basketball short riding up his legs, his glasses now off and on your nightstand as he tries to focus on anything but your ass on his raging boner.Â
âDonât be shy, open those pretty legs for me,â he cooed in your ear. He was almost at a loss for words seeing how wet you were. Youâre soaking through your panties, the cold air hitting you making you shiver. You swallow, watching his fingers trace around the wet spot. You wanted it so badly, but your body felt like it would collapse if he touched you again.Â
âMark,â you whined, covering your face as you turned away from his lewd sensual actions.Â
âYouâre such a dream.â He was breathing in your ear, fingers lightly pressing on your hard clit. Your hips unconsciously pressed against his hand making him bite his lip softly. âDo you like that? When I touch you right there?âÂ
He chuckled when you leaned into his body trying to close your legs once more.Â
âTell me what you want. I need you to speak to me.â His voice was calm and soothing, evoking more emotions from you that felt a bit foreign.Â
âMark..I canât,â you say quietly. âPlease just do whatever you want.â
âno no no, I need you to say it.â He watches you uncover your face to reveal an extremely flustered expression, brows furrowed with your lip between your teeth.Â
âI want your⊠fingers in me,â you say, cringing at the words coming out your mouth.
âGood girl,â he says. Mark slides your panties to the side, the amount of slick sticking to them making him almost moan out loud. Mark would never admit it, but when you told him you were a virgin, he was ecstatic. Mark loves virgins. So easy to turn on, so wet, and when they get comfortable, they get extremely confident. Mark knows how shy and self conscious you are, but it never bothered him one bit.Â
âFuck, look at that,â he whispers, taking his index finger scooping your juices from between you legs. âDo you get like this by yourself?â
You couldnât say anything. Every cell in your body was telling you to get up and run away, but you needed him so badly it hurt. âdonât tease me,â you squeak out.Â
âOh baby, I wasnât teasing. I love that a pretty girl like you gets this wet when you think about me.â You could hear the grin as he continued to speak. âI bet you taste as good as you look, hm? You think so?âÂ
You body freezes in shock watching him raise his fingers to his lips, maintaining his eye contact. Mark sucks his finger, a smirk on his mouth watching your legs shut. You seemed shocked on the outside, but your stomach did about 15 flips already. These were the things you read in books but you never imagined it could happen to you in real life.Â
âBaby don't look away from me,â he cooed, turning your head to face him. Mark kisses you deeply making you taste yourself on his tongue. He takes his other hand, prying your legs open. Mark rubs your inner thighs, the feeling of him so close to your core making you squirm. His fingers ghost over your swollen clit, the feeling of being touched there by him making you jump.Â
âMark, please,â you whimper softly on his lips.Â
He keeps kissing you, passionate and deep as he rubs your clit slowly. Your brows furrow, gasp escaping your lungs when you feel the surge of pleasure run through your body. Mark pulls away smiling at the way you chased his lips as he parted from you.Â
âYou like it don't you,â he whispered, watching your hips grind on his hand.Â
You nod, brows knit, feeling his kiss your cheek. Your body leans into his back flat against his chest. You can feel his rapid breathing, the sensation sending you into a deeper spiral. Mark stops rubbing, taking two fingers and slowly pushing them inside you.Â
âFuck,â you moan softly, taking his other hand as he pulls his fingers pump in you slowly. âW-wait, can we just-âÂ
âShhh baby let me take care of you,â he said softly. He keeps pumping his fingers, hissing at the feeling of your tight pussy squeezing around him. The sound of you squelching making him harder and harder, the sheer wetness between your legs being everything he's ever wanted.Â
Hearing the sounds of your own whimpering and wetness combined made you cringe, starting to bother. You whine starting to shut your legs in embarrassment, but that didn't slow his movement.Â
âM-mark, please,â you whine, face hot from embarrassment.
âAre you embarrassed?â His soft chuckle made a fire light in your belly.
âI hate the sound.â
âWhy?â Mark fingered you faster, lip between his teeth watching you fail to keep your knees together. âI love that sound. It's so fucking hot.â
Your whines and whimpers get louder and louder the faster he goes. Your grip on his other hand loosens while your head falls back on his shoulder. You've never felt your body get this weak, not even from touching yourself.Â
âPretty girl,â he whispers in your ear. âMy pretty girl.âÂ
Your hips begin to move on their own, grinding with his hand. Goosebumps form on your skin with the way his rough palm keeps brushing against your clit.Â
âYou like that? You like my fingers fucking you hm?â He could almost moan when you nod, pushing your hips in his hand even more. Mark moves his other hand away from yours, tugging up your shirt instead. His hand attached to your chest almost too naturally as if he's done this before.Â
âPrettiest tits, prettiest pussy,â he says low in your ear. âFucking perfect.âÂ
âMark, I'm so close,â you whine, head turning to look at him. You had the most beautiful teary eyes look on your face, the pleasure becoming too overwhelming for you.Â
âCum for me. Be a good girl and cum.â He maintains eye contact. the way he looks at you makes you want to melt. Your hips moved fast âThere you go baby. Good girl. Just keep grinding.âÂ
âI love you so much,â you whine, taking his lips into a heated kiss. At this point Mark completely stilled his hand, letting you move on his fingers until you came, but you hadn't even noticed. You're so wrapped up in your own world that you can't tell that the extra friction has worn off. âI-Im cummingâ
Mark feels your squeeze tight around his fingers, your juices soaking his digits. The look of complete bliss on your face would be enough to make him cum if it wasn't for the blue balls he was experiencing at the moment. âThat's it, there you go. I love those pretty sounds.âÂ
âShitâŠoh my god.â
Mark watched you regain consciousness, your face going from complete relaxation to shy in a couple of seconds. âHey, you okay,â he asks softly, a smile on his face as he watches you still trying to regain some sense of reality.
You close your legs, the air hitting your skin making you shiver. âI'm fine,â you mumble, âI've never done anything like that.âÂ
He chuckles, soothing your sides with his thumbs. âI know.â He wants to be a good boyfriend, he really does, but the way you look at him through your lashes, your pretty doe eyes looking back at him like you're begging for his cock. He needs you to, he needs you to say you want even more. Mark knows that he won't be able to hold himself back anymore, especially after this. He just wants to reward you for being the best girl he could possibly imagine. Mark wants to make you cum over and over again, show you what it feels like to be stretched out for the first time.Â
âMark, stop looking at me like that,âyou whine, covering your face in embarrassment.Â
âLooking at you like what?â he continues to gaze at you like he was to devour you whole, the tension making you sweat.Â
âLike you wanna eat me.â
âBut I do.â Mark loved the shocked look on your face coupled with your legs squeezing together. âYou like the sound of that dont you?â
âMaybe.âÂ
âWould you let me?âÂ
But Mark knew he didn't need the answer to his question, not when you smile, kissing him softly. Little didnt you know you were about to get yourself into the longest night of your life.
#nct#nct fanfic#nct u#nct oneshot#nct smut#nct scenarios#nct x reader#nct dream#nct 127#nct dream fanfic#nct dream smut#nct dream scenarios#nct dream oneshots#nct 127 fanfic#nct 127 smut#nct 127 scenarios#nct 127 imagines#mark#nct mark#mark imagines#mark fanfic#mark smut#mark scenarios#mark oneshot#mark lee#mark x reader
671 notes
·
View notes